Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n worship_n worship_v zeal_n 45 3 7.7789 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A17642 The commentaries of M. Iohn Caluin vpon the Actes of the Apostles, faithfully translated out of Latine into English for the great profite of our countrie-men, by Christopher Fetherstone student in diuinitie; Commentarii in Acta Apostolorum. English Calvin, Jean, 1509-1564.; Fetherston, Christopher. 1585 (1585) STC 4398; ESTC S107377 721,474 648

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

doctrine_n it_o be_v and_o whether_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o inquire_v whether_o any_o man_n dare_v mutter_v against_o their_o superstition_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v convict_v they_o may_v forthwith_o burn_v he_o furthermore_o steeven_n answer_n may_v seem_v at_o the_o first_o blush_v absurd_a and_o foolish_a he_o begin_v first_o at_o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n afterward_o he_o make_v a_o long_a narration_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o a_o manner_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a fault_n than_o to_o utter_v many_o word_n which_o be_v nothing_o appertinent_a unto_o the_o matter_n but_o whosoever_o shall_v thorough_o consider_v this_o long_a speech_n he_o shall_v find_v nothing_o therein_o which_o be_v superfluous_a and_o shall_v full_o well_o perceive_v that_o steven_n speak_v very_o appertinent_o as_o the_o matter_n require_v he_o be_v accuse_v as_o a_o apostata_fw-la or_o revolt_v which_o do_v attempt_v the_o overthrow_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o beat_v in_o this_o diligent_o that_o he_o retain_v that_o god_n which_o the_o father_n have_v always_o worship_v so_o that_o he_o turn_v away_o the_o crime_n of_o wicked_a backslide_n and_o declare_v that_o his_o enemy_n be_v prick_v forward_o with_o nothing_o less_o than_o with_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o bear_v a_o show_n that_o they_o be_v whole_o determine_v to_o increase_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o wringe_v from_o they_o this_o false_a boast_n and_o because_o they_o have_v the_o father_n always_o in_o their_o mouth_n because_o they_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o nation_n steeven_n declare_v also_o that_o they_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o be_v proud_a of_o this_o but_o rather_o that_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o father_n be_v so_o great_a &_o so_o many_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o to_o be_v ashamed_a and_o humble_v as_o concern_v the_o principal_a state_n of_o the_o cause_n because_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o temple_n and_o the_o ceremony_n he_o affirm_v plain_o that_o their_o father_n be_v elect_v of_o god_n to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n before_o there_o be_v any_o temple_n and_o before_o moses_n be_v bear_v and_o to_o this_o end_n tend_v that_o exordium_n or_o beginning_n which_o be_v so_o far_o fetch_v second_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o all_o external_a rite_n which_o god_n give_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n be_v fashion_v according_a to_o the_o heavenly_a pattern_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v refer_v unto_o another_o end_n and_o that_o those_o deal_n foolish_o and_o disordered_o who_o omit_v the_o truth_n and_o stay_v only_o in_o the_o sign_n if_o the_o reader_n shall_v refer_v the_o whole_a oration_n of_o steeven_n unto_o these_o point_n they_o shall_v find_v nothing_o therein_o which_o agree_v not_o very_o well_o with_o the_o cause_n as_o i_o shall_v declare_v again_o brief_o in_o the_o end_n nevertheless_o that_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a oration_n shall_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o we_o may_v discuss_v all_o thing_n brief_o which_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n 2_o man_n brethren_n and_o father_n although_o steeven_n see_v that_o those_o which_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o swear_a enemy_n of_o christ_n yet_o because_o the_o ordinary_a government_n of_o the_o people_n do_v belong_v to_o they_o and_o they_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o church_n which_o god_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o cast_v of_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a for_o modesty_n sake_n to_o call_v they_o father_n neither_o do_v he_o flatter_o purchase_n favour_n hereby_o but_o he_o give_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o order_n and_o government_n appoint_v by_o god_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o authority_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o the_o order_n be_v alter_v nevertheless_o the_o reverence_n of_o the_o place_n which_o they_o have_v do_v not_o hinder_v he_o nor_o stop_v his_o mouth_n but_o that_o he_o do_v free_o dissent_v from_o they_o whereby_o it_o appear_v how_o ridiculous_a the_o papist_n be_v who_o will_v have_v we_o so_o tie_v unto_o bare_a &_o vain_a invent_a title_n that_o they_o may_v enforce_v we_o to_o subscribe_v unto_o their_o decree_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o wicked_a the_o god_n of_o glory_n by_o this_o beginning_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o do_v not_o disagree_v or_o dissent_v from_o the_o father_n in_o true_a religion_n which_o they_o follow_v for_o all_o religion_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n all_o prophecy_n do_v depend_v upon_o that_o covenant_n which_o god_n make_v with_o abraham_n therefore_o when_o steeven_n confess_v that_o god_n appear_v to_o abraham_n he_o embrace_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n which_o flow_v from_o that_o first_o revelation_n as_o from_o a_o fountain_n moreover_o he_o call_v he_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n that_o he_o may_v distinguishe_v he_o from_o the_o false_a and_o feign_a god_n who_o alone_o be_v worthy_a of_o glory_n when_o he_o be_v in_o mesopotamia_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o that_o region_n be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n which_o lie_v between_o the_o river_n tigris_n and_o euphrates_n and_o he_o say_v before_o he_o dwell_v in_o charran_n because_o abraham_n be_v warn_v by_o a_o oracle_n flee_v from_o chaldea_n to_o charran_n which_o be_v a_o city_n of_o mesopotamia_n famous_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o slaughter_n of_o crassus_n and_o the_o roman_a army_n although_o pliny_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o city_n of_o arabia_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o chaldea_n be_v in_o this_o place_n comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o mesopotamia_n because_o although_o that_o region_n which_o be_v enclose_v with_o tigris_n and_o euphrates_n be_v proper_o mesopotamia_n proper_o or_o mesopotamia_n the_o country_n between_o two_o river_n yet_o those_o which_o set_v down_o any_o description_n of_o country_n do_v call_v both_o assyria_n &_o chaldea_n by_o this_o name_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o abraham_n be_v command_v by_o god_n do_v forsake_v his_o country_n and_o so_o he_o be_v prevent_v with_o the_o mere_a goodness_n of_o god_n when_o as_o he_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v he_o at_o home_n of_o the_o own_o accord_n read_v the_o last_o chapter_n of_o josua_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o moses_n his_o narration_n do_v somewhat_o disagree_v with_o this_o for_o after_o that_o about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 11._o chap._n of_o genesis_n he_o have_v declare_v that_o abraham_n do_v go_v into_o another_o country_n to_o dwell_v have_v leave_v his_o house_n he_o add_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o twelf_n that_o god_n speak_v unto_o abraham_n this_o be_v easy_o answer_v for_o moses_n recite_v not_o in_o this_o latter_a place_n what_o happen_v after_o the_o departure_n of_o abraham_n but_o least_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o abraham_n wander_v into_o other_o country_n have_v unaduised_o forsake_v his_o own_o house_n as_o light_n and_o undiscrete_a man_n use_v to_o do_v sometime_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o departure_n to_o wit_n because_o he_o be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o flit_v into_o another_o place_n and_o thus_o much_o do_v the_o word_n of_o the_o oracle_n import_n for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o stranger_n in_o a_o other_o country_n god_n can_v not_o have_v command_v he_o to_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o native_a soil_n forsake_v his_o kinsman_n and_o father_n house_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o this_o place_n agree_v wondrous_a well_o with_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n for_o after_o that_o moses_n have_v say_v that_o abraham_n go_v to_o charran_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v show_v that_o this_o journey_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n not_o through_o any_o lightness_n of_o man_n but_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o add_v that_o afterward_o which_o he_o have_v before_o omit_v which_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v much_o use_v of_o the_o hebr._n 3_o come_v out_o of_o thy_o country_n god_n use_v many_o word_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o wound_v the_o mind_n of_o abraham_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n sharp_a enough_o of_o itself_o to_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n and_o that_o serve_v to_o try_v his_o faith_n even_o as_o that_o other_o thing_n also_o that_o god_n assign_v he_o no_o land_n wherein_o he_o may_v dwell_v but_o make_v he_o stand_v in_o doubt_n &_o wait_v for_o a_o time_n wherefore_o the_o obedience_n of_o abraham_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o be_v commend_v because_o the_o sweetness_n of_o his_o native_a soil_n keep_v he_o not_o back_o from_o go_v willing_o as_o it_o be_v into_o exile_n &_o in_o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o follow_v god_n although_o
that_o it_o be_v like_a to_o leaven_v we_o have_v before_o that_o there_o be_v great_a concourse_n of_o people_n so_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o true_a doctrine_n be_v sow_v throughout_o the_o whole_a city_n luke_n say_v now_o that_o it_o be_v spread_v far_o to_o wit_n throughout_o the_o whole_a country_n 50_o nevertheless_o he_o declare_v that_o that_o be_v do_v not_o without_o great_a pain_n and_o trouble_n therefore_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v joyful_a and_o prosperous_a neither_o can_v satan_n hinder_v the_o course_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n it_o stand_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n upon_o who_o god_n have_v bring_v forth_o into_o the_o field_n to_o strive_v and_o we_o must_v mark_v what_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o religious_a and_o honest_a woman_n together_o with_o the_o chief_a man_n of_o the_o city_n be_v enforce_v to_o persecute_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o be_v no_o small_a offence_n to_o the_o rude_a and_o those_o who_o be_v as_o yet_o scarce_o beget_v in_o christ_n when_o they_o see_v all_o those_o man_n and_o woman_n which_o be_v of_o any_o account_v or_o estimation_n set_v against_o christ_n and_o also_o whatsoever_o be_v praise_v woorthye_a according_a to_o man_n a_o great_a multitude_n of_o man_n receive_v christ_n but_o it_o be_v but_o the_o multitude_n and_o the_o ofscouringe_n of_o man_n against_o they_o be_v set_v the_o chief_a man_n of_o the_o city_n who_o with_o their_o pomp_n do_v easy_o oppress_v the_o base_a and_o obscure_a multitude_n that_o may_v also_o cause_v doctrine_n to_o be_v suspect_v yea_o to_o be_v hate_v in_o that_o godly_a and_o honest_a matron_n to_o look_v to_o be_v enemy_n to_o it_o if_o wicked_a ungodly_a &_o mischievous_a man_n shall_v have_v issue_v out_o of_o their_o tavern_n &_o den_n if_o company_n of_o whore_n shall_v break_v out_o of_o their_o brothilhouse_n it_o shall_v be_v no_o reproach_n to_o the_o gospel_n yea_o rather_o the_o dignity_n thereof_o shall_v thereby_o appear_v more_o plain_o but_o now_o what_o may_v the_o weak_a think_v with_o themselves_o but_o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o have_v such_o adversary_n be_v not_o of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o not_o only_o the_o faithful_a who_o be_v as_o yet_o weak_a shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o lord_n lest_o their_o faith_n shall_v fail_v but_o also_o that_o the_o hand_n shall_v be_v reach_v out_o to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n lest_o be_v discourage_v they_o shall_v leave_v of_o and_o by_o this_o example_n the_o lord_n mean_v to_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o must_v valiant_o resist_v such_o let_n and_o that_o we_o must_v beware_v lest_o the_o vain_a visure_n of_o virtue_n do_v blind_a our_o eye_n so_o that_o we_o can_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o gospel_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o that_o virtue_n and_o honesty_n which_o be_v in_o man_n be_v mere_a hypocrisy_n where_o they_o set_v themselves_o against_o christ_n though_o it_o may_v be_v that_o those_o who_o be_v rash_o carry_v against_o christ_n for_o a_o time_n may_v afterward_o repent_v notwithstanding_o we_o must_v thus_o think_v with_o ourselves_o that_o whatsoever_o fair_a show_n of_o holiness_n those_o bear_n who_o resist_v the_o gospel_n they_o be_v neither_o endue_v with_o the_o perfect_a fear_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v they_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o a_o vain_a shadow_n how_o great_o soever_o they_o boast_v of_o their_o virtue_n neither_o be_v it_o without_o cause_n that_o christ_n have_v this_o title_n give_v he_o 2.35_o luk._n 2.35_o that_o he_o reveal_v the_o cogitation_n of_o many_o heart_n religious_a and_o what_o manner_n religion_n can_v that_o be_v where_o there_o be_v no_o reverence_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o must_v note_v that_o there_o be_v four_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o there_o be_v few_o which_o worship_n god_n sincere_o &_o from_o the_o heart_n so_o there_o be_v few_o who_o open_o profess_v the_o manifest_a and_o gross_a contempt_n of_o he_o these_o be_v two_o sort_n and_o the_o more_o part_n be_v neither_o quite_o without_o religion_n neither_o be_v it_o altogether_o void_a of_o the_o common_a worship_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o while_o they_o do_v cold_o and_o as_o it_o be_v overfield_n play_v with_o god_n if_o they_o be_v thorough_o examine_v they_o be_v but_o profane_a like_o as_o at_o this_o day_n the_o ungodliness_n of_o many_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n shroud_v under_o ceremony_n and_o the_o feign_a profession_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n so_o that_o in_o all_o age_n there_o have_v be_v certain_a worshipper_n of_o god_n who_o have_v worship_v he_o like_o stage_n player_n who_o holiness_n do_v whole_o consist_v in_o gesture_n and_o vain_a pomp_n in_o paul_n time_n even_o as_o at_o this_o day_n a_o peculiar_a study_n of_o godliness_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o a_o few_o who_o religion_n though_o it_o be_v impure_a and_o their_o heart_n feign_v deceitful_a and_o double_a yet_o be_v they_o count_v after_o a_o sort_n religious_a in_o respect_n of_o their_o zeal_n but_o hereby_o appear_v what_o account_n we_o may_v make_v of_o bare_a religion_n which_o drive_v headlong_o through_o unaduised_a heat_n the_o professor_n thereof_o to_o resist_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n &_o to_o oppress_v his_o glory_n furthermore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o though_o these_o matron_n have_v not_o altogether_o give_v their_o name_n to_o judaisme_n neither_o have_v they_o be_v nousle_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o be_v they_o half_a jewiss_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o do_v so_o willing_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o nation_n for_o thus_o be_v woman_n lead_v about_o captive_a be_v load_v with_o sin_n as_o paul_n witness_v 51_o when_o they_o have_v shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o their_o foot_n 10.11_o mat._n 10.14_o luk._n 9.5_o &_o 10.11_o we_o may_v also_o gather_v even_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n that_o this_o be_v a_o token_n of_o curse_v among_o the_o jew_n for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o christ_n mean_v to_o have_v his_o use_n a_o unknowen_a sign_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v his_o purpose_n to_o terrify_v the_o gross_a and_o profess_a contemner_n of_o his_o doctrine_n furthermore_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o declare_v that_o god_n do_v so_o detest_v the_o wicked_a that_o we_o must_v take_v great_a heed_n that_o we_o have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o they_o lest_o we_o be_v infect_v with_o their_o uncleanness_n all_o the_o wicked_a be_v say_v in_o deed_n to_o pollute_v the_o ground_n whereon_o they_o tread_v but_o the_o lord_n do_v never_o command_v that_o any_o save_v only_o the_o contemner_n of_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v so_o reject_v with_o such_o execration_n if_o any_o adulterer_n or_o whoremonger_n if_o any_o perjure_a person_n if_o any_o drunkard_n be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_a this_o sign_n be_v not_o use_v therefore_o it_o appear_v how_o intolerable_a the_o contempt_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v in_o his_o sight_n because_o when_o as_o he_o command_v that_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o foot_n be_v shake_v off_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v pronounce_v that_o they_o be_v the_o bondslave_n of_o satan_n man_n past_o hope_n and_o worthy_a to_o be_v banish_v from_o of_o the_o earth_n wherefore_o let_v this_o so_o great_a severity_n teach_v we_o to_o reverence_v the_o gospel_n also_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n be_v teach_v with_o how_o great_a ferventness_n of_o zeal_n they_o must_v maintain_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o word_n that_o they_o do_v not_o cold_o dissemble_v and_o wink_v at_o the_o contempt_n thereof_o 52_o the_o disciple_n be_v fill_v with_o joy_n this_o member_n may_v be_v expound_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n that_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o joy_n and_o the_o spirit_n by_o hypallage_n thus_o with_o joy_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o spiritual_a joy_n because_o there_o be_v no_o quietness_n peace_n or_o joy_n of_o conscience_n but_o it_o come_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o which_o respect_n paul_n say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v rightuousnesse_n peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o spirit_n 14.17_o rom._n 14.17_o or_o that_o the_o word_n spirit_n may_v contain_v under_o it_o other_o virtue_n and_o gift_n yet_o this_o please_v i_o better_o that_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o joy_n because_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n reign_v in_o they_o which_o alone_o do_v so_o make_v we_o glad_a true_o and_o perfect_o that_o we_o be_v carry_v up_o above_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o we_o must_v mark_v luke_n his_o drift_n that_o the_o faithful_a be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v trouble_v and_o shake_v
man_n for_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o there_o be_v some_o divine_a thing_n in_o that_o worship_n because_o he_o do_v ascribe_v unto_o mortal_a man_n the_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o but_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o cornelius_n do_v count_v peter_n in_o steed_n of_o god_n for_o if_o he_o translate_v god_n honour_n unto_o mortal_a man_n where_o be_v that_o godliness_n and_o religion_n with_o the_o title_n whereof_o he_o be_v of_o late_o adourn_v therefore_o i_o think_v that_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o spoil_v god_n of_o his_o lawful_a worship_n that_o he_o may_v give_v it_o to_o man_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o mean_v to_o give_v singular_a honour_n unto_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n of_o christ_n he_o fall_v into_o a_o immoderate_a token_n of_o reverence_n and_o so_o he_o offend_v in_o excess_n for_o it_o can_v scarce_o be_v express_v in_o word_n how_o prone_a man_n be_v to_o fall_v to_o superstition_n when_o as_o that_o honour_n be_v give_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n which_o have_v any_o small_a show_n of_o divine_a worship_n for_o we_o fall_v easy_o unwares_o into_o that_o whereof_o we_o think_v full_a little_a there_o be_v less_o danger_n in_o a_o king_n or_o in_o the_o chief_a chieftane_n of_o this_o world_n for_o he_o which_o fall_v down_o before_o a_o king_n keep_v himself_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o earthly_a and_o civil_a honour_n but_o the_o case_n stand_v otherwise_o in_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n for_o as_o their_o office_n be_v spiritual_a so_o if_o any_o man_n fall_v down_o at_o their_o foot_n to_o worship_v they_o this_o honour_n have_v in_o it_o some_o spiritual_a thing_n for_o we_o must_v put_v a_o difference_n between_o civil_a worship_n which_o man_n use_v among_o themselves_o in_o respect_n of_o civil_a order_n and_o that_o under_o which_o be_v contain_v religion_n or_o which_o respect_v direct_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n as_o also_o between_o law_n which_o be_v make_v for_o temporal_a regiment_n or_o which_o bind_v the_o conscience_n for_o certain_a foolish_a man_n be_v deceive_v too_o far_o who_o think_v that_o kneel_v be_v in_o this_o place_n condemn_v simple_o and_o of_o itself_o but_o this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o say_v cornelius_n do_v not_o here_o salute_v his_o proconsul_n or_o the_o emperor_n after_o any_o civil_a sort_n but_o be_v strike_v with_o wonder_v when_o he_o see_v peter_n he_o honour_v he_o as_o he_o will_v have_v honour_v god_n if_o he_o have_v be_v present_a so_o that_o he_o give_v man_n more_o than_o be_v meet_v have_v as_o it_o be_v forget_v himself_o he_o think_v nothing_o less_o as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v then_o to_o rob_v god_n of_o any_o part_n of_o his_o honour_n that_o he_o may_v give_v that_o to_o man_n which_o he_o take_v from_o he_o but_o when_o as_o the_o worship_n which_o be_v give_v to_o man_n have_v somewhat_o which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v link_v with_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n man_n fall_v into_o a_o fault_n contrary_n to_o their_o hope_n and_o opinion_n so_o that_o they_o extol_v man_n above_o his_o degree_n and_o give_v he_o the_o worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n the_o papist_n omit_v that_o distinction_n snatch_v only_o at_o one_o member_n for_o they_o handle_v religious_a worship_n only_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v ascribe_v some_o part_n thereof_o with_o some_o honest_a colour_n unto_o creature_n they_o cut_v it_o into_o latriam_fw-la duliam_fw-la &_o hyperduliam_fw-la they_o give_v latriam_fw-la to_o god_n alone_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o adoration_n of_o worship_n be_v due_a to_o he_o alone_o they_o make_v duliam_fw-la common_a to_o the_o dead_a and_o their_o bone_n to_o image_n and_o picture_n they_o assign_v their_o hype_a duliam_fw-la to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o to_o the_o cross_n whereon_o christ_n hang_v that_o i_o may_v omit_v to_o say_v that_o they_o babble_n through_o childish_a ignorance_n how_o many_o of_o they_o do_v understande_v that_o rot_a distinction_n neither_o do_v i_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n but_o of_o the_o chieftain_n therefore_o all_o their_o worshiping_n must_v needs_o be_v infect_v &_o corrupt_a with_o wicked_a superstition_n see_v they_o unaduised_o match_v creature_n with_o god_n but_o luke_n say_v not_o in_o this_o place_n that_o cornelius_n give_v to_o peter_n latriam_fw-la or_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n he_o use_v only_o the_o general_a word_n worship_v and_o he_o add_v notwithstanding_o that_o he_o be_v reprove_v because_o he_o do_v wicked_o extol_v man_n high_o than_o become_v he_o sure_o if_o that_o new_a opinion_n concern_v the_o adoration_n which_o be_v call_v dulica_fw-la have_v any_o place_n peter_n oughts_z to_o have_v admonish_v cornelius_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o go_v beyond_o duliam_fw-la but_o because_o no_o worship_n whereunto_o religion_n be_v annex_v and_o the_o respect_n of_o god_n honour_n do_v leave_v to_o god_n his_o honour_n untouched_a what_o name_n soever_o it_o have_v therefore_o peter_n be_v content_a with_o this_o one_o only_a reason_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n moreover_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o the_o papist_n whether_o they_o think_v that_o john_n be_v so_o blockish_a that_o he_o will_v take_v the_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n which_o they_o call_v latriam_fw-la and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o angel_n sure_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o that_o cause_v he_o to_o worship_v the_o angel_n save_v only_o too_o much_o and_o preposterous_a reverence_n and_o that_o in_o honour_n of_o god_n who_o glory_n shine_v in_o the_o angel_n notwithstanding_o his_o fact_n be_v condemn_v therefore_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v give_v god_n that_o which_o be_v his_o own_o let_v the_o spiritual_a worship_n under_o which_o be_v comprehend_v religion_n remain_v whole_a and_o sound_a to_o he_o 28_o you_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a this_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o friendly_a preface_n and_o such_o as_o may_v rather_o harden_v than_o win_v their_o heart_n when_o as_o they_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v account_v so_o unclean_a that_o with_o their_o familiarity_n &_o conference_n they_o pollute_v the_o saint_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o great_a reproach_n for_o they_o but_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o peter_n thus_o to_o speak_v lest_o they_o shall_v suspect_v that_o he_o have_v a_o evil_a conscience_n because_o contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n deliver_v by_o the_o father_n he_o come_v but_o when_o as_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n all_o such_o suspicion_n be_v take_v away_o and_o purge_v moreover_o he_o mitigate_v very_o well_o by_o these_o word_n the_o offence_n which_o do_v stick_v in_o their_o mind_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o old_a grudge_n which_o be_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n so_o that_o he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n have_v enter_v his_o speech_n better_o for_o he_o pronounce_v that_o those_o be_v now_o clean_o who_o be_v before_o unclean_a so_o that_o they_o have_v mutual_a fellowship_n now_o with_o the_o saint_n furthermore_o where_o as_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v wickedness_n for_o the_o jew_n to_o go_v in_o unto_o the_o gentile_n we_o must_v know_v that_o this_o come_v not_o so_o much_o from_o the_o law_n as_o from_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o father_n god_n have_v forbid_v in_o deed_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o entangle_v themselves_o with_o marriage_n or_o covenant_n 7.3_o deut._n 7.3_o they_o be_v never_o forbid_v to_o eat_v with_o they_o or_o to_o use_v the_o common_a business_n of_o life_n but_o least_o that_o familiarity_n may_v entice_v they_o unto_o that_o which_o be_v forbid_v they_o observe_v the_o custom_n deliver_v by_o the_o father_n so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o company_n together_o it_o be_v to_o no_o end_n to_o dispute_v here_o whether_o that_o tradition_n do_v bind_v man_n conscience_n for_o peter_n do_v not_o teach_v what_o be_v lawful_a according_a to_o god_n but_o what_o be_v common_o use_v no_o man_n he_o make_v the_o sum_n and_o end_n of_o the_o vision_n more_o plain_a when_o he_o refer_v that_o unto_o man_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o meat_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o no_o man_n be_v unclean_a it_o may_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o particular_a person_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o unbeliever_n be_v pollute_v with_o uncleanness_n of_o conscience_n so_o that_o they_o pollute_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v otherwise_o pure_a when_o as_o they_o do_v but_o touch_v they_o paul_n also_o say_v that_o their_o child_n remain_v unclean_a until_o they_o be_v cleanse_v by_o faith_n final_o if_o faith_n alone_o do_v purge_v and_o purify_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n unbelief_n do_v make_v the_o same_o profane_a but_o peter_n compare_v the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n together_o in_o this_o place_n and_o because_o the_o wall_n of_o
have_v make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v therein_o see_v he_o be_v lord_n both_o of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n dwell_v not_o in_o temple_n make_v with_o hand_n 25_o neither_o be_v he_o worship_v with_o man_n hand_n need_v any_o thing_n see_v that_o he_o give_v to_o all_o life_n and_o breath_n through_o all_o thing_n 22_o man_n of_o athens_n we_o may_v divide_v this_o sermon_n of_o paul_n into_o five_o member_n for_o though_o luke_n do_v only_o brief_o touch_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o set_v down_o in_o many_o word_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o do_v comprehend_v the_o sum_n so_o that_o he_o do_v omit_v none_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n first_o paul_n lay_v superstition_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o man_n of_o athens_n because_o they_o worship_v their_o god_n at_o all_o a_o very_a venture_n second_o he_o show_v by_o natural_a argument_n who_o and_o what_o god_n be_v and_o how_o he_o be_v right_o worship_v three_o he_o inveigh_v against_o the_o blockishness_n of_o man_n who_o though_o they_o be_v create_v to_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v know_v their_o creator_n and_o maker_n yet_o do_v they_o wander_v and_o err_v in_o darkness_n like_o blind_a man_n four_o he_o show_v that_o nothing_o be_v more_o absurd_a than_o to_o draw_v any_o purtrature_n of_o god_n see_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v his_o true_a image_n in_o the_o first_o place_n he_o descend_v at_o length_n unto_o christ_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a for_o it_o be_v requisite_a to_o handle_v those_o four_o point_n general_o before_o he_o do_v descend_v unto_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o it_o be_v more_o superstitious_a the_o grecian_n do_v oftentimes_o take_v deisidaimonian_n in_o good_a part_n notwithstanding_o it_o do_v sometime_o signify_v immoderate_a fear_n wherewith_o superstitious_a man_n do_v careful_o torment_v themselves_o while_o that_o they_o forge_n to_o themselves_o vain_a doubt_n and_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o man_n of_o athens_n pass_v all_o measure_n in_o worship_v god_n or_o that_o they_o do_v not_o perceive_v what_o manner_n work_v moderation_n shall_v be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o deal_v very_o undiscret_o in_o that_o they_o weary_a themselves_o in_o go_v by_o way_n thus_o much_o touch_v the_o word_n now_o to_o the_o matter_n he_o prove_v by_o this_o one_o reason_n that_o all_o the_o worshippings_fw-mi of_o the_o man_n of_o athens_n be_v corrupt_a because_o they_o be_v uncertain_a what_o god_n they_o ought_v to_o worship_n because_o they_o take_v in_o hand_n rash_o and_o unaduised_o diverse_a rite_n and_o that_o without_o measure_n for_o in_o that_o they_o have_v set_v up_o a_o altar_n to_o the_o unknowen_a god_n it_o be_v a_o token_n that_o they_o know_v no_o certainty_n they_o have_v in_o deed_n a_o great_a company_n of_o god_n whereof_o they_o speak_v much_o but_o when_o as_o they_o mix_v they_o with_o unknowen_a god_n they_o confess_v by_o this_o that_o they_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o true_a divinity_n furthermore_o whosoever_o do_v worship_n god_n without_o any_o certainty_n he_o worship_v his_o own_o invention_n in_o steed_n of_o god_n howsoever_o credulous_a man_n do_v flatter_v themselves_o yet_o neither_o do_v god_n allow_v any_o religion_n without_o knowledge_n and_o truth_n neither_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v count_v holy_a and_o lawful_a yea_o how_o proud_a soever_o they_o be_v yet_o because_o they_o doubt_v in_o their_o conscience_n they_o must_v needs_o be_v convict_v by_o their_o own_o judgement_n for_o superstition_n be_v always_o fearful_a &_o do_v ever_o now_o &_o then_o coin_v some_o new_a thing_n therefore_o we_o see_v how_o miserable_a their_o condition_n be_v who_o have_v not_o the_o certain_a light_n of_o the_o truth_n because_o they_o do_v both_o always_o doubt_v in_o themselves_o and_o loose_v their_o labour_n before_o god_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o unbeliever_n while_o that_o they_o sometime_o make_v themselves_o blind_a through_o voluntary_a stubornnes_n &_o be_v sometime_o amid_o diverse_a and_o manifold_a doubt_n strive_v &_o fight_v with_o themselves_o oftentimes_o they_o do_v not_o only_o flatter_v themselves_o but_o if_o any_o man_n dare_v mutter_v against_o their_o folly_n they_o rage_v cruel_o against_o he_o the_o devil_n do_v so_o bewitch_v they_o that_o they_o think_v nothing_o to_o be_v better_o than_o that_o which_o please_v they_o nevertheless_o if_o there_o arise_v any_o doubt_n if_o any_o seducer_n put_v up_o his_o head_n if_o any_o new_a folly_n begin_v to_o appear_v they_o do_v not_o only_o waver_v be_v in_o doubt_n but_o also_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n offer_v themselves_o to_o be_v carry_v hither_o and_o thither_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o neither_o in_o judgement_n neither_o in_o quiet_a state_n of_o mind_n they_o stay_v and_o rest_n in_o the_o common_a custom_n of_o worship_v god_n but_o that_o they_o drop_v like_o drunken_a man_n but_o carefulness_n &_o doutfulnes_n which_o do_v not_o suffer_v the_o unbeliever_n to_o flatter_v and_o please_v themselves_o be_v better_a they_o such_o amasednes_n final_o though_o superstition_n be_v not_o always_o fearful_a yet_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v enwrap_v in_o diverse_a error_n it_o disquiet_v man_n mind_n &_o do_v prick_v they_o with_o diverse_a blind_a torment_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o man_n of_o athens_n do_v mix_v their_o domestical_a god_n who_o they_o think_v they_o know_v because_o in_o their_o vain_a opinion_n they_o have_v invent_v they_o with_o unknown_a god_n for_o thereby_o appear_v their_o unquietness_n because_o they_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o do_v as_o they_o ought_v when_o they_o have_v do_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o familiar_a god_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o their_o father_n &_o who_o they_o call_v their_o country_n god_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n paul_n may_v pluck_v out_o of_o their_o mind_n all_o vain_a &_o false_a persuasion_n he_o take_v this_o maxim_n that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o worship_v neither_o have_v they_o any_o certain_a divine_a power_n for_o if_o they_o have_v know_v any_o god_n at_o all_o be_v content_a with_o he_o they_o will_v never_o have_v fall_v away_o unto_o unknown_a god_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o abolish_n of_o all_o idol_n 23_o to_o the_o unknowen_a god_n i_o can_v well_o grant_v that_o this_o altar_n be_v dedicate_v to_o all_o strange_a god_n yet_o i_o can_v yield_v to_o that_o which_o jerome_n say_v that_o paul_n do_v by_o a_o certain_a holy_a wiliness_n attribute_n that_o to_o one_o god_n which_o be_v write_v of_o many_o for_o see_v the_o superscription_n be_v common_a in_o every_o man_n mouth_n there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o subtlety_n why_o do_v he_o then_o change_v the_o plural_a number_n sure_o not_o that_o he_o may_v deceive_v the_o man_n of_o athens_n but_o because_o the_o matter_n do_v so_o require_v he_o say_v that_o he_o bring_v doctrine_n concern_v a_o unknown_a god_n and_o after_o he_o have_v show_v that_o they_o be_v deceive_v because_o they_o know_v not_o what_o god_n they_o ought_v to_o worship_n &_o have_v no_o certain_a godhead_n in_o a_o great_a heap_n of_o god_n he_o do_v now_o insinuat_fw-la himself_n &_o do_v purchase_v favour_n for_o his_o doctrine_n because_o it_o be_v a_o unjust_a thing_n to_o reject_v that_o which_o be_v utter_v concern_v a_o new_a god_n to_o who_o they_o have_v already_o give_v over_o themselves_o &_o it_o be_v far_o better_a first_o to_o know_v he_o then_o rash_o to_o worship_v he_o who_o they_o know_v not_o thus_o do_v paul_n return_v again_o to_o that_o principle_n that_o god_n can_v be_v worship_v right_o unless_o he_o be_v first_o make_v know_v but_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v move_v how_o he_o say_v that_o god_n be_v worship_v at_o athens_n who_o do_v refuse_v all_o worshipping_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o his_o law_n yea_o he_o pronounce_v that_o all_o that_o be_v idolatry_n which_o man_n invent_v without_o his_o word_n if_o god_n allow_v no_o worship_n but_o that_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o his_o word_n how_o do_v paul_n give_v this_o praise_n to_o man_n who_o do_v dote_v without_o measure_n that_o they_o woorship_v god_n for_o christ_n in_o condemn_v the_o samaritan_n be_v content_v with_o this_o one_o principle_n in_o that_o they_o worship_n god_n without_o knowledge_n 4.22_o joh._n 4.22_o and_o yet_o they_o do_v boast_v that_o they_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n then_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o man_n of_o athens_n who_o have_v bury_v and_o quite_o put_v out_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o true_a god_n have_v put_v in_o place_n of_o he_o jupiter_n
and_o so_o god_n predestination_n do_v abolish_v all_o preparation_n which_o sophister_n imagine_v as_o if_o man_n do_v prevent_v god_n grace_n by_o his_o own_o free_a will_n in_o call_v he_o the_o god_n of_o the_o father_n he_o renew_v the_o rembrance_n of_o the_o promise_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v know_v that_o the_o new_a call_n of_o paul_n be_v join_v with_o they_o and_o that_o those_o fall_v not_o away_o from_o the_o law_n who_o passover_o unto_o christ_n therefore_o paul_n confirm_v that_o by_o these_o word_n which_o he_o avouch_v before_o in_o his_o own_o person_n that_o he_o have_v not_o make_v any_o departure_n from_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n who_o the_o jew_n have_v in_o time_n pass_v worship_v but_o that_o he_o continue_v in_o the_o ancient_a worship_n which_o the_o father_n do_v use_v which_o he_o have_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o law_n wherefore_o when_o the_o question_n be_v about_o religion_n let_v we_o learn_v by_o the_o example_n of_o paul_n not_o to_o imagine_v any_o new_a god_n as_o the_o papist_n and_o mahometistes_n have_v do_v and_o as_o all_o heretic_n use_v to_o do_v but_o let_v we_o retain_v that_o god_n who_o have_v reveal_v himself_o in_o time_n pass_v to_o the_o father_n both_o by_o the_o law_n and_o also_o by_o diverse_a oracle_n this_o be_v that_o antiquity_n wherein_o we_o must_v remain_v and_o not_o in_o that_o whereof_o the_o papist_n boast_v in_o vain_a who_o have_v invent_v to_o themselves_o a_o strange_a god_n see_v they_o have_v forsake_v the_o lawful_a father_n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o religion_n see_v it_o disagree_v with_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n their_o god_n must_v also_o be_v degenerate_a and_o feign_a for_o he_o who_o will_v in_o time_n past_a be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o of_o the_o father_n appear_v at_o length_n in_o the_o person_n of_o his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v now_o be_v call_v by_o his_o own_o name_n or_o title_n the_o father_n of_o christ_n therefore_o he_o which_o reject_v the_o son_n have_v not_o the_o father_n who_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o he_o and_o ananias_n say_v that_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v through_o the_o free_a election_n of_o god_n that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v now_o appear_v to_o paul_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o do_v not_o attain_v unto_o this_o by_o his_o own_o industry_n which_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v also_o declare_v for_o nothing_o be_v more_o stubborn_a than_o paul_n until_o christ_n do_v tame_v he_o and_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o cause_n and_o beginning_n ananias_n call_v we_o back_o unto_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o be_v appoint_v and_o ordain_v and_o assure_o it_o be_v a_o more_o precious_a thing_n to_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n than_o that_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o it_o by_o their_o own_o industry_n that_o which_o ananias_n affirm_v of_o paul_n ought_v to_o be_v translate_v unto_o all_o that_o the_o treasure_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o but_o it_o be_v offer_v peculiar_o to_o the_o elect._n furthermore_o it_o appear_v more_o plain_o by_o the_o next_o member_n what_o this_o will_n of_o god_n be_v for_o god_n speak_v at_o sundry_a time_n and_o many_o way_n by_o his_o prophet_n but_o last_o of_o all_o he_o reveal_v and_o make_v know_v his_o will_n and_o himself_o whole_o in_o his_o son_n to_o see_v the_o just_a see_v all_o the_o greek_a book_n in_o a_o manner_n agree_v together_o in_o the_o masculine_a gender_n i_o wonder_v why_o erasmus_n will_v rather_o translate_v it_o in_o the_o neuter_n which_o be_v just_o which_o sense_n the_o reader_n see_v to_o be_v cold_a and_o far_o fetch_v 1.1_o heb._n 1.1_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o just_o be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n for_o christ_n and_o the_o text_n run_v very_o fine_o thus_o because_o it_o follow_v immediate_o after_o &_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o his_o mouth_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o godly_a and_o holy_a man_n do_v most_o of_o all_o desire_n that_o they_o may_v see_v christ_n thence_o flow_v that_o confession_n of_o simeon_n lord_n now_o let_v thou_o thy_o seruamt_a depart_n in_o peace_n because_o my_o eye_n have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n therefore_o this_o see_v which_o godly_a king_n and_o prophet_n do_v most_o earnest_o desire_v as_o christ_n himself_o do_v witness_v 10.24_o luke_n 2.29_o luk._n 10.24_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n extol_v as_o a_o singular_a benefit_n of_o god_n but_o because_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o eye_n shall_v profit_v little_a or_o nothing_o which_o we_o know_v be_v to_o many_o deadly_a he_o adjoin_v the_o hear_n of_o the_o voice_n ananias_n set_v down_o the_o cause_n why_o god_n do_v vouchsafe_v paul_n of_o so_o great_a honour_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o may_v be_v to_o his_o son_n a_o public_a witness_n and_o he_o do_v so_o prepare_v he_o that_o he_o may_v learn_v not_o only_o for_o himself_o alone_o but_o that_o he_o may_v have_v so_o much_o the_o more_o care_n to_o profit_n because_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o teacher_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n 16_o and_o now_o why_o tarry_v thou_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o ananias_n do_v faithful_o instruct_v paul_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o godliness_n for_o he_o will_v not_o have_v baptize_v he_o if_o he_o have_v be_v void_a of_o true_a faith_n but_o luke_n pass_v over_o many_o thing_n and_o do_v brief_o gather_v the_o sum_n therefore_o see_v paul_n do_v understand_v that_o the_o promise_a redemption_n be_v now_o give_v in_o christ_n ananias_n say_v for_o good_a cause_n that_o nothing_o ought_v to_o stay_v he_o from_o be_v baptise_a but_o when_o he_o say_v why_o tarry_v thou_o he_o do_v not_o chide_v paul_n neither_o do_v he_o accuse_v he_o of_o slackness_n but_o he_o do_v rather_o amplify_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o add_v baptism_n the_o like_a sentence_n have_v we_o in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n 10.47_o cha._n 10.47_o can_v any_o man_n let_v those_o from_o be_v baptise_a with_o water_n who_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v they_o even_o as_o we_o but_o when_o he_o say_v wash_v away_o thy_o sin_n by_o this_o speech_n he_o express_v the_o force_n and_o fruit_n of_o baptism_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v wash_v away_o thy_o sin_n by_o baptism_n but_o because_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n more_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o outward_a and_o corruptible_a element_n than_o be_v meet_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o baptism_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o purge_n sure_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o and_o as_o it_o be_v once_o shed_v to_o this_o end_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o sprinkle_n thereof_o through_o faith_n do_v make_v we_o clean_o continual_o this_o honour_n can_v be_v translate_v unto_o the_o sign_n of_o water_n without_o do_v open_a injury_n to_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o experience_n do_v teach_v how_o earnest_o man_n be_v bend_v unto_o this_o superstition_n therefore_o many_o godly_a man_n lest_o they_o put_v confidence_n in_o the_o outward_a sign_n do_v overmuch_o extenuate_v the_o force_n of_o baptism_n but_o they_o must_v keep_v a_o measure_n that_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v keep_v within_o their_o bound_n lest_o they_o darken_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o they_o may_v not_o want_v their_o force_n and_o use_v wherefore_o we_o must_v hold_v this_o first_o that_o it_o be_v god_n alone_o who_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n and_o to_o the_o end_n this_o wash_n may_v be_v effectual_a in_o we_o he_o work_v by_o the_o hide_a power_n of_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v remission_n of_o sin_n we_o must_v seek_v no_o other_o author_n thereof_o but_o the_o heavenly_a father_n we_o must_v imagine_v no_o other_o material_a cause_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o when_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o formal_a cause_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o chief_a but_o there_o be_v a_o inferior_a instrument_n and_o that_o be_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n &_o baptism_n itself_o but_o though_o god_n alone_o do_v work_v by_o the_o inward_a power_n of_o his_o spirit_n yet_o that_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o he_o may_v use_v at_o his_o pleasure_n such_o instrument_n and_o mean_n as_o he_o know_v to_o be_v convenient_a not_o that_o he_o include_v in_o the_o element_n any_o thing_n which_o he_o take_v either_o from_o his_o spirit_n or_o from_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o he_o will_v have_v the_o sign_n itself_o to_o be_v a_o
they_o may_v not_o condemn_v any_o man_n to_o death_n yet_o they_o may_v use_v some_o light_a chastisement_n as_o be_v scourge_v nevertheless_o tertullus_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o desire_v before_o the_o precedent_n to_o have_v he_o put_v to_o death_n 8_o have_v make_v inquiry_n a_o good_a request_n that_o the_o governor_n do_v not_o give_v sentence_n before_o he_o thorough_o examine_v and_o know_v the_o matter_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o condemn_v paul_n before_o he_o be_v lawful_o convict_v but_o how_o dare_v they_o put_v in_o these_o condition_n see_v their_o own_o conscience_n do_v accuse_v they_o of_o unjust_a deal_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o have_v witness_n in_o readiness_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o offer_v themselves_o to_o prove_v the_o matter_n until_o they_o do_v call_v they_o though_o there_o be_v another_o end_n for_o they_o do_v hope_v that_o felix_n will_v be_v so_o persuade_v with_o such_o glorious_a word_n that_o he_o will_v turn_v over_o unto_o they_o the_o man_n who_o they_o do_v accuse_v for_o a_o condemn_a man_n who_o they_o may_v handle_v at_o their_o pleasure_n in_o sum_n the_o more_o fierce_a they_o be_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o more_o they_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o some_o affiance_n they_o have_v in_o themselves_o they_o think_v they_o shall_v get_v the_o upper_a hand_n by_o this_o mean_n because_o the_o party_n arreign_v shall_v have_v no_o licence_n grant_v to_o defend_v himself_o thus_o do_v false_a accuser_n bold_o boast_v that_o their_o matter_n be_v plain_a that_o they_o may_v blind_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o judge_n 10_o and_o paul_n answer_v after_o that_o the_o governor_n have_v beckon_v to_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v speak_v with_o a_o better_a mind_n do_v i_o speak_v for_o myself_o forasmuch_o as_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o have_v judge_v this_o nation_n this_o many_o year_n 11_o see_v that_o thou_o may_v know_v that_o there_o be_v yet_o but_o twelve_o day_n since_o th●●_n i_o come_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o worship_n 12_o and_o they_o neither_o find_v i_o in_o the_o temple_n dispute_v with_o any_o man_n or_o cause_v any_o concourse_n of_o people_n neither_o in_o the_o synagogue_n neither_o in_o the_o city_n 13_o neither_o can_v they_o prove_v those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o accuse_v i_o 14_o but_o this_o i_o confess_v to_o thou_o that_o according_a to_o the_o way_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n so_o worship_v i_o the_o god_n of_o my_o father_n believe_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n 15_o and_o have_v hope_n towards_o god_n that_o the_o same_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o they_o wait_v for_o shall_v be_v both_o of_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a 16_o and_o herein_o i_o study_v always_o to_o have_v a_o clear_a conscience_n toward_o god_n and_o toward_a man_n 17_o and_o after_o many_o year_n i_o come_v and_o bring_v alm_n to_o my_o nation_n and_o offering_n 18_o wherein_o they_o find_v i_o purify_v in_o the_o temple_n neither_o with_o multitude_n neither_o with_o unquietnes_n 19_o 20_o and_o certain_a jew_n out_o of_o asia_n who_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v present_a here_o and_o to_o accuse_v if_o they_o have_v any_o thing_n against_o i_o 21_o or_o else_o let_v these_o same_o here_o say_v if_o they_o have_v find_v any_o iniquity_n in_o i_o stand_v i_o or_o see_v i_o stand_v when_o i_o stand_v in_o the_o council_n 22_o except_o it_o be_v for_o this_o one_o voice_n that_o i_o cry_v stand_v among_o they_o i_o be_o judge_v of_o you_o this_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a 10_o and_o paul_n the_o state_n of_o paul_n his_o defence_n be_v not_o conversant_a in_o the_o quality_n but_o he_o deni_v the_o crime_n that_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n not_o that_o he_o be_v ashamed_a of_o the_o gospel_n or_o affraied_a of_o the_o cross_n but_o because_o that_o be_v no_o place_n to_o make_v any_o full_a confession_n of_o faith_n in_o therefore_o omit_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o his_o accuser_n have_v not_o touch_v he_o answer_v simple_o unto_o the_o crime_n whereof_o he_o be_v accuse_v but_o before_o he_o come_v thither_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v the_o more_o willing_o answer_v for_o himself_o before_o felix_n because_o he_o have_v long_o time_n be_v governor_n of_o judea_n because_o peradventure_o some_o new_a governor_n will_v have_v be_v sore_o move_v hear_v such_o thing_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n he_o do_v not_o commend_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o governor_n but_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v glad_a because_o he_o be_v of_o great_a experience_n that_o he_o may_v judge_v more_o just_o this_o be_v sure_o a_o sincere_a and_o free_a manner_n of_o defend_v to_o set_v matter_n against_o word_n yet_o paul_n seem_v to_o gather_v amiss_o that_o felix_n can_v know_v the_o time_n of_o his_o come_n because_o he_o have_v be_v governor_n many_o year_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v say_v therefore_o because_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o he_o will_v deal_v more_o moderate_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v because_o thou_o have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o their_o condition_n long_a time_n i_o have_v the_o better_a hope_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o deceive_v thou_o for_o want_v of_o skill_n do_v make_v judge_n too_o credulous_a and_o do_v enforce_v they_o to_o make_v too_o much_o haste_n 11_o to_o worship_n first_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o come_v for_o other_o cause_n and_o he_o will_v afterward_o confess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a that_o he_o may_v bring_v alm_n for_o the_o sustentation_n of_o the_o brethren_n but_o we_o may_v well_o excuse_v he_o because_o it_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o come_n only_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o way_n to_o excuse_v himself_o of_o corrupt_a religion_n wherefore_o though_o he_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n for_o some_o other_o cause_n yet_o this_o be_v always_o true_a that_o he_o come_v with_o no_o other_o mind_n but_o to_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o god_n and_o to_o approve_v the_o holiness_n of_o the_o temple_n by_o his_o worship_v the_o other_o question_n be_v more_o hard_a how_o he_o say_v that_o he_o come_v to_o worship_n see_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v already_o abolish_v and_o all_o difference_n of_o the_o temple_n take_v away_o i_o answer_v in_o this_o place_n likewise_o that_o though_o he_o do_v not_o make_v his_o purpose_n know_v yet_o he_o do_v not_o lie_v or_o dissemble_v for_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o forbid_v to_o worship_n in_o the_o temple_n so_o they_o do_v not_o tie_v holiness_n to_o the_o place_n but_o do_v lift_v up_o pure_a hand_n free_o without_o make_v choice_n of_o place_n 2.8_o ●_o tim._n 2.8_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o paul_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n after_o he_o be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n that_o he_o may_v make_v his_o godliness_n know_v and_o there_o to_o use_v the_o solemn_a rite_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v void_a of_o superstition_n so_o he_o do_v not_o offer_v any_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o religion_n do_v not_o compel_v he_o to_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n according_a to_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o law_n as_o if_o the_o sanctuary_n be_v the_o face_n of_o god_n as_o in_o time_n past_a yet_o he_o do_v not_o abhor_v the_o external_a worship_n which_o be_v unto_o man_n a_o testimony_n of_o godliness_n 12_o dispute_v with_o any_o man_n paul_n have_v no_o need_n to_o deny_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n if_o he_o have_v do_v they_o because_o he_o may_v have_v answer_v for_o himself_o that_o it_o be_v well_o do_v he_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o scribe_n which_o dispute_v daily_o neither_o be_v they_o forbid_v either_o by_o the_o law_n or_o by_o custom_n but_o that_o they_o may_v assemble_v themselves_o together_o to_o be_v teach_v yea_o to_o this_o end_n there_o be_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o city_n synagogue_n wherein_o they_o meet_v together_o moreover_o he_o know_v that_o both_o christ_n and_o also_o his_o apostle_n have_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n also_o he_o may_v easy_o have_v turn_v back_o upon_o his_o adversary_n the_o crime_n which_o they_o do_v object_n to_o he_o who_o do_v daily_o use_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n but_o because_o he_o aim_v at_o no_o other_o thing_n at_o this_o present_a but_o to_o refute_v the_o false_a accusation_n of_o his_o adversary_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o importunate_a man_n have_v unaduised_o molest_v he_o for_o no_o cause_n he_o intreat_v not_o of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o fact_n as_o they_o say_v but_o only_a of_o the_o fact_n and_o he_o stand_v chief_o upon_o this_o point_n to_o refute_v that_o slander_n
because_o he_o be_v burden_v to_o be_v a_o raiser_n of_o tumult_n therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v false_o and_o unjust_o accuse_v because_o the_o adversary_n have_v never_o prove_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v allege_v this_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o discharge_v he_o see_v he_o be_v thus_o burden_v with_o wicked_a lie_n whereas_o there_o rest_v in_o he_o not_o the_o very_a lest_o suspicion_n that_o can_v be_v devise_v 14_o but_o i_o confess_v because_o they_o have_v lay_v to_o paul_n his_o charge_n impiety_n and_o the_o pollute_a of_o the_o temple_n he_o purge_v himself_o of_o both_o now_o that_o felix_n may_v understand_v that_o his_o adversary_n be_v move_v with_o evil_a will_n for_o though_o the_o religion_n which_o be_v pretend_v be_v false_a and_o preposterous_a yet_o the_o study_n thereof_o do_v oftentimes_o find_v favour_n with_o man_n who_o take_v no_o great_a heed_n wherefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o felix_n if_o he_o have_v conceive_v any_o sinister_a suspicion_n of_o paul_n shall_v not_o only_o have_v pardon_v the_o zeal_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o also_o have_v grant_v their_o request_n wherefore_o paul_n do_v also_o refute_v this_o point_n of_o the_o accusation_n and_o that_o so_o that_o he_o do_v not_o touch_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o as_o we_o have_v say_v that_o be_v no_o fit_a place_n for_o make_v confession_n thereof_o but_o what_o be_v this_o that_o he_o say_v that_o he_o worship_v god_n according_a to_o the_o way_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n some_o think_v that_o this_o be_v add_v like_o to_o a_o concession_n because_o the_o enemy_n take_v that_o in_o evil_a part_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o judgement_n and_o right_a election_n as_o if_o paul_n have_v say_v that_o that_o form_n of_o religion_n which_o he_o have_v follow_v be_v in_o deed_n call_v heresy_n but_o unworthelie_o but_o see_v that_o name_n be_v not_o infamous_a either_o among_o the_o jew_n or_o gentile_n it_o be_v unlikely_a that_o he_o make_v answer_v before_o a_o profane_a man_n touch_v that_o which_o they_o count_v every_o where_o rather_o a_o commendation_n than_o any_o vice_n when_o christian_n have_v conference_n together_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n command_v that_o heretic_n be_v count_v detectable_a and_o he_o teach_v we_o to_o beware_v of_o heresy_n because_o they_o bring_v upon_o the_o church_n plague_n dissension_n and_o waistnesse_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v suffer_v among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o safety_n consist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o the_o jew_n do_v then_o open_o boast_v of_o their_o sect_n that_o excuse_v whereof_o we_o speak_v of_o late_o be_v superstuous_a therefore_o it_o remain_v that_o he_o do_v either_o mean_a that_o he_o be_v a_o pharisee_n or_o that_o he_o call_v the_o jewish_a religion_n or_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n without_o infamy_n heresy_n because_o they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o use_n and_o custom_n of_o all_o nation_n see_v he_o do_v before_o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o pharisee_n there_o shall_v no_o inconvenience_n ensue_v if_o we_o say_v that_o he_o do_v repeat_v the_o same_o now_o especial_o see_v he_o speak_v short_o after_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o because_o this_o first_o point_n do_v only_o contain_v a_o confession_n concern_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o god_n of_o the_o father_n i_o th●nke_v that_o he_o do_v rather_o speak_v general_o of_o the_o jewish_a religion_n or_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n which_o do_v flow_v thence_o paul_n be_v a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o as_o he_o come_v of_o the_o jew_n by_o his_o ancestry_n he_o confess_v that_o he_o continue_v in_o the_o religion_n which_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o father_n and_o to_o this_o end_n do_v the_o adverbe_n of_o likeness_n tend_v for_o it_o show_v a_o know_a thing_n namely_o the_o manner_n of_o worship_n whereunto_o the_o jew_n be_v addict_v he_o make_v express_v mention_n of_o the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n because_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o roman_a to_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n unless_o he_o have_v come_v of_o the_o jew_n also_o he_o touch_v his_o adversary_n which_o handle_v he_o so_o cruel_o whereas_o notwithstanding_o they_o both_o worship_v one_o god_n i_o say_v he_o worship_v the_o same_o god_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n deliver_v by_o my_o ancestor_n which_o they_o themselves_o worship_n and_o even_o as_o they_o worship_v he_o neither_o do_v that_o hinder_a because_o he_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n and_o be_v content_a with_o the_o spiritual_a worship_n of_o god_n for_o paul_n think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o wipe_v away_o that_o blot_n of_o impiete_n which_o his_o adversary_n have_v false_o cast_v upon_o he_o therefore_o the_o papist_n be_v ridiculous_a who_o feign_v that_o paul_n allow_v all_o manner_n antiquity_n we_o say_v they_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n with_o paul_n as_o the_o custom_n be_v deliver_v to_o we_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n as_o if_o even_o they_o themselves_o be_v judge_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o jew_n or_o turk_n to_o hold_v up_o the_o same_o buckler_n against_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o apostle_n mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o simple_o to_o ground_n religion_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o ancestor_n and_o to_o defend_v his_o godliness_n with_o that_o defence_n which_o may_v have_v be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n he_o mean_v only_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o his_o adversary_n nevertheless_o he_o take_v this_o for_o a_o plain_a matter_n that_o the_o father_n from_o who_o the_o jewish_a religion_n come_v be_v good_a and_o sincere_a worshipper_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v not_o degenerate_a might_n well_o boast_v that_o the_o god_n of_o their_o father_n who_o they_o worship_v be_v the_o only_a creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n &_o that_o the_o country_n god_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v mere_a and_o vain_a invention_n believe_v all_o thing_n a_o short_a exposition_n of_o the_o sentence_n next_o go_v before_o for_o because_o he_o have_v not_o simple_o affirm_v that_o he_o worship_v god_n but_o do_v add_v this_o word_n outos_fw-la or_o so_o he_o do_v now_o set_v down_o how_o he_o worship_v god_n whereby_o it_o appear_v what_o great_a heed_n he_o take_v for_o fear_n he_o entangle_v himself_o in_o those_o accidental_a superstition_n which_o reign_v among_o the_o jew_n as_o if_o any_o of_o we_o do_v at_o this_o day_n answer_v the_o papist_n that_o he_o worship_v the_o god_n who_o they_o profess_v as_o we_o be_v teach_v out_o of_o the_o law_n &_o out_o of_o the_o gospel_n by_o this_o let_v we_o learn_v that_o god_n be_v not_o right_o worship_v so_o that_o our_o obedience_n can_v please_v he_o unless_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o only_a groundwork_n of_o godliness_n for_o he_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n do_v not_o thrust_v upon_o they_o bare_a ceremony_n but_o he_o say_v flat_o that_o he_o believe_v furthermore_o this_o place_n contain_v a_o profitable_a doctrine_n that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a foundation_n of_o right_n and_o true_a faith_n for_o a_o man_n to_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o reverent_o to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o furthermore_o paul_n do_v in_o this_o place_n divide_v the_o scripture_n into_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o plain_o prove_v that_o he_o do_v not_o dissent_v from_o the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n 15_o hope_v in_o god_n we_o must_v note_v the_o course_n of_o his_o speech_n for_o after_o that_o he_o have_v profess_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o scripture_n he_o do_v now_o add_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o come_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o it_o come_v not_o from_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o flesh_n or_o from_o the_o decree_n of_o man_n but_o it_o be_v conceive_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n thus_o do_v the_o reverence_n of_o the_o scripture_n go_v before_o that_o it_o may_v hold_v we_o fast_o bind_v and_o it_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o faith_n after_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v there_o do_v follow_v be_v couple_v and_o link_v with_o sure_a hope_n and_o whereas_o he_o make_v they_o his_o fellow_n it_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o sound_a sort_n though_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o seek_v by_o this_o mean_n and_o policy_n to_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o their_o lurk_a place_n into_o the_o clear_a
they_o do_v all_o thing_n so_o tyrannous_o that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o lust_n bear_v a_o show_n of_o right_n and_o liberty_n be_v drive_v far_o away_o and_o at_o length_n the_o truth_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v condemn_v by_o good_a right_n but_o the_o lord_n bring_v upon_o they_o a_o sudden_a fear_n so_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o do_v that_o which_o they_o can_v and_o which_o they_o do_v most_o of_o all_o desire_n whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n shall_v bring_v in_o defence_n of_o their_o cause_n that_o shall_v remain_v bury_v and_o shut_v uppe_o with_o the_o wall_n where_o there_o be_v none_o which_o do_v bear_v they_o any_o favour_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v for_o the_o truth_n yet_o we_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n bring_v their_o counsel_n to_o nought_o while_o that_o be_v keep_v back_o with_o fear_n of_o the_o people_n they_o stay_v themselves_o and_o bridle_v their_o fury_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v avoid_v envy_n but_o i_o marvel_v much_o why_o luke_n do_v m●ke_v anna_n the_o high_a priest_n in_o this_o place_n see_v that_o it_o appear_v by_o josephus_n that_o this_o honour_n be_v not_o take_v from_o caiphas_n until_o vitellius_n have_v enter_v jerusalem_n to_o bear_v rule_n after_o that_o pilate_n be_v command_v to_o depart_v unto_o rome_n all_o man_n grant_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v crucify_v in_o the_o eighteen_o year_n of_o tiberius_n and_o that_o empire_n do_v continue_v four_o year_n long_o and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o there_o be_v 3._o year_n complete_a after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n before_o pilate_n be_v put_v from_o the_o office_n of_o the_o proconsull_n for_o when_o tiberius_n be_v dead_a he_o come_v to_o rome_n so_o that_o caiphas_n be_v high_a priest_n yet_o 3._o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o that_o whereof_o luke_n speak_v in_o this_o place_n do_v not_o happen_v immediate_o after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n although_o the_o doubt_n can_v thus_o be_v answer_v for_o josephus_n report_v that_o jonathas_n be_v choose_v into_o the_o place_n of_o caiphas_n but_o because_o this_o jonathas_n be_v the_o son_n of_o annas_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o unlike_a to_o be_v true_a that_o the_o son_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n as_o caiphas_n also_o have_v two_o name_n for_o they_o do_v also_o call_v he_o joseph_n 7_o in_o what_o power_n they_o do_v yet_o seem_v to_o have_v some_o zeal_n of_o god_n for_o they_o feign_v that_o they_o be_v careful_a that_o the_o honour_n due_a unto_o god_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o any_o other_o name_n be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n for_o authoririe_a in_o sum_n they_o deal_v as_o if_o they_o be_v most_o earnest_a defender_n &_o maintainer_n of_o god_n glory_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n their_o importunatenes_n be_v wonderful_a in_o that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o drive_v the_o apostle_n to_o make_v denial_n by_o ask_v many_o question_n concern_v a_o manifest_a matter_n &_o to_o wring_v out_o by_o fear_v some_o ●●her_a thing_n than_o they_o have_v confess_v but_o god_n do_v bring_v their_o crafty_a wiliness_n to_o naught_o &_o make_v they_o hear_v that_o which_o they_o will_v not_o 8_o peter_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v not_o without_o great_a cause_n that_o luke_n add_v this_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o peter_n speak_v not_o with_o such_o a_o majesty_n of_o himself_o and_o sure_o see_v he_o have_v deny_v his_o master_n christ_n be_v afraid_a at_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o sielie_a woman_n he_o shall_v have_v utter_o faint_v in_o such_o a_o assembly_n 26.70_o mat._n 26.70_o when_o he_o do_v only_o behold_v their_o pomp_n unless_o he_o have_v be_v uphold_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o have_v great_a need_n of_o wisdom_n &_o strength_n he_o excel_v in_o both_o these_o so_o much_o that_o his_o answer_n be_v in_o deed_n divine_a he_o be_v another_o manner_n of_o man_n here_o than_o he_o be_v before_o furthermore_o this_o profit_v we_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n for_o this_o title_n or_o commendation_n be_v of_o no_o small_a force_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o doctrine_n which_o shall_v follow_v immediate_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o come_v from_o the_o holy_a god_n and_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o crave_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n when_o we_o make_v profession_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o direct_v our_o heart_n &_o mind_n the_o fullness_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v take_v for_o a_o large_a &_o no_o common_a measure_n 9_o if_o we_o be_v judge_v undoubted_o peter_n lay_v tyranny_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o priest_n &_o the_o scribe_n because_o they_o examine_v they_o unjust_o concern_v a_o benefit_n which_o deserve_v praise_n as_o if_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n have_v commit_v some_o heinous_a offence_n if_o say_v he_o we_o be_v accuse_v for_o this_o cause_n because_o we_o have_v make_v a_o sick_a man_n whole_a peter_n have_v in_o this_o place_n more_o respect_n unto_o the_o wicked_a affection_n of_o the_o mind_n than_o unto_o the_o very_a order_n of_o the_o question_n for_o if_o under_o colour_n of_o a_o miracle_n the_o apostle_n will_v have_v draw_v away_o the_o people_n from_o the_o true_a &_o sincere_a worship_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v have_v be_v worthy_o call_v to_o answer_v for_o themselves_o because_o religion_n do_v far_o excel_v all_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o present_a life_n but_o see_v they_o have_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o do_v wicked_o make_v a_o offence_n of_o that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v honour_v peter_n be_v support_v with_o this_o confidence_n do_v at_o the_o first_o gird_v they_o witty_o with_o a_o taunt_a preface_n because_o they_o sit_v as_o judge_n to_o condemn_v good_a deed_n yet_o he_o touch_v this_o point_n but_o light_o that_o he_o may_v pass_v over_o unto_o the_o matter_n 10_o be_v it_o know_v unto_o you_o peter_n may_v as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v have_v turn_v aside_o unto_o many_o start_a hole_n if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v enter_v the_o cause_n but_o because_o the_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v glorify_v he_o descend_v by_o and_o by_o unto_o this_o for_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o such_o excellent_a power_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o seal_n to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o wicked_a will_v they_o will_v they_o be_v enforce_v to_o hear_v that_o which_o they_o will_v have_v have_v bury_v full_a deep_a when_o they_o have_v do_v what_o they_o can_v this_o be_v all_o they_o cause_n peter_n to_o avouch_v and_o object_v to_o their_o face_n that_o wherewith_o they_o be_v so_o grieve_v when_o it_o be_v speak_v to_o other_o and_o first_o he_o make_v christ_n the_o author_n of_o the_o miracle_n second_o because_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o absurd_a and_o uncredible_a thing_n that_o a_o dead_a man_n shall_v be_v endue_v with_o divine_a power_n he_o testify_v that_o christ_n be_v alive_a because_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a howsoever_o they_o have_v crucify_v he_o so_o that_o the_o miracle_n give_v he_o occasion_n to_o preach_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o this_o testimony_n peter_n mean_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n he_o say_v that_o they_o have_v crucify_v he_o not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v upbraid_v this_o unto_o they_o that_o they_o may_v acknowledge_v their_o fault_n but_o also_o that_o they_o may_v understand_v that_o they_o have_v in_o vain_a strive_v against_o god_n and_o so_o consequent_o cease_v to_o rage_v so_o unlucke_o and_o with_o such_o deadly_a success_n 11_o this_o be_v the_o stone_n he_o confirm_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n that_o the_o ringleader_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v glorious_a title_n give_v they_o and_o have_v the_o chief_a room_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n have_v notwithstanding_o wicked_o reject_v christ_n therefore_o he_o cit_v a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o psalm_n 118.22_o psa_fw-la 118.22_o where_o david_n complain_v that_o he_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o boast_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v of_o god_n to_o have_v the_o chief_a room_n moreover_o he_o compare_v the_o church_n or_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o a_o usual_a metaphor_n to_o a_o building_n he_o call_v those_o which_o have_v the_o government_n the_o master_n of_o the_o work_n and_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o principal_a stone_n whereon_o the_o whole_a building_n be_v stay_v and_o ground_v fot_o that_o
the_o cause_n which_o stephen_n have_v in_o hand_n to_o recite_v this_o history_n of_o their_o rebellion_n than_o the_o other_o for_o the_o people_n do_v quite_o overthrow_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n they_o refuse_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n they_o bring_v in_o a_o strange_a and_o profane_a religion_n and_o this_o be_v a_o notable_a place_n because_o it_o point_v out_o the_o fountain_n from_o which_o all_o manner_n of_o superstition_n do_v flow_v since_o the_o beginning_n and_o especial_o what_o be_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o make_v idol_n to_o wit_n because_o man_n which_o be_v carnal_a will_v notwithstanding_o have_v god_n present_a with_o he_o according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o his_o flesh_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o man_n be_v so_o bold_a in_o all_o age_n to_o make_v idol_n and_o god_n do_v in_o deed_n apply_v himself_o to_o our_o rudeness_n thus_o far_o that_o he_o show_v himself_o visible_o after_o a_o sort_n under_o figure_n for_o there_o be_v many_o sign_n under_o the_o law_n to_o testify_v his_o presence_n and_o he_o come_v down_o unto_o we_o even_o at_o this_o day_n by_o baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n and_o also_o by_o the_o external_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n but_o man_n offend_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n in_o this_o for_o first_o be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v they_o bold_o get_v to_o themselves_o new_a mean_n this_o be_v no_o small_a fault_n because_o their_o finger_n itch_v always_o to_o have_v new_a invention_n without_o keep_v any_o mean_a and_o so_o they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o pass_v the_o bound_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v they_o but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a image_n of_o god_n save_o that_o which_o he_o appoint_v therefore_o what_o image_n so_o ever_o be_v feign_v and_o invent_v by_o man_n beside_o his_o word_n they_o be_v false_a &_o corrupt_a there_o be_v also_o another_o vice_n no_o less_o intolerable_a that_o as_o man_n mind_n conceive_v nothing_o of_o god_n but_o that_o which_o be_v gross_a and_o earthly_a so_o it_o translate_v all_o token_n of_o god_n presence_n unto_o the_o same_o grossness_n neither_o do_v man_n delight_n in_o those_o idol_n only_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v make_v but_o also_o do_v corrupt_v whatsoever_o god_n have_v ordain_v by_o wrest_v it_o unto_o a_o contrary_a end_n god_n come_v down_o unto_o we_o in_o deed_n as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v but_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v lift_v we_o up_o into_o heaven_n with_o he_o but_o we_o because_o we_o be_v whole_o set_v upon_o the_o earth_n will_v in_o like_a sort_n have_v he_o in_o the_o earth_n by_o this_o mean_n be_v his_o heavenly_a glory_n deform_v and_o that_o fulfil_v altogether_o which_o the_o israelite_n say_v here_o make_v we_o god_n for_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o do_v not_o worship_n god_n spiritual_o he_o make_v unto_o himself_o a_o new_a god_n and_o yet_o if_o you_o thorough_o weigh_v all_o thing_n the_o israelite_n will_v not_o have_v a_o god_n make_v of_o set_a purpose_n by_o they_o but_o they_o think_v rather_o that_o they_o have_v the_o true_a and_o eternal_a god_n under_o the_o shape_n of_o the_o golden_a calf_n for_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o offer_v the_o appoint_a sacrifice_n &_o they_o approve_v that_o with_o their_o consent_n which_o aaron_n say_v that_o those_o be_v the_o god_n by_o who_o they_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o egypt_n but_o god_n pass_v not_o for_o those_o frivolous_a imagination_n but_o he_o complain_v that_o man_n put_v strange_a god_n in_o his_o place_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o depart_v even_o a_o very_a little_a from_o his_o word_n 41_o and_o they_o make_v a_o calf_n we_o may_v easy_o gather_v by_o that_o which_o go_v before_o why_o they_o be_v more_o delight_v in_o that_o figure_n than_o in_o any_o other_o for_o although_o egypt_n do_v swarm_v with_o innumerable_a idol_n yet_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o they_o make_v the_o great_a account_n of_o a_o ox_n and_o whence_o be_v it_o that_o they_o be_v so_o desirous_a to_o have_v a_o idol_n save_v only_o because_o they_o be_v turn_v back_o into_o egypt_n as_o stephen_n have_v already_o say_v we_o must_v note_v the_o speech_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o idol_n aaron_n command_v the_o people_n to_o assemble_v themselves_o together_o to_o worship_n god_n they_o come_v altogether_o therefore_o they_o testify_v that_o they_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o defraud_v god_n of_o his_o worship_n howsoever_o they_o translate_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o calf_n yea_o rather_o they_o be_v determine_v to_o worship_n god_n in_o the_o image_n of_o the_o calf_n but_o because_o they_o forsake_v the_o true_a god_n by_o make_v a_o idol_n whatsoever_o follow_v afterward_o it_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o idol_n because_o god_n refuse_v all_o wicked_a worship_v for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v to_o account_v that_o as_o bestow_v upon_o he_o which_o he_o have_v not_o command_v and_o because_o he_o forbid_v they_o express_o to_o erect_v any_o visible_a image_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v mere_a sacrilege_n what_o soever_o be_v do_v afterward_o in_o honour_n thereof_o they_o rejoice_v over_o the_o work_n this_o speech_n be_v take_v out_o of_o jesaias_n yea_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n who_o in_o like_a sort_n upbraid_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o be_v delight_v in_o their_o own_o invention_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v wonderful_a madness_n when_o man_n arrogate_v unto_o themselves_o any_o thing_n in_o god_n matter_n i_o take_v this_o rejoice_v to_o be_v that_o solemn_a dance_n whereof_o moses_n speak_v in_o the_o two_o and_o thirtith_n chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la yet_o stephen_n touch_v a_o common_a vice_n wherewith_o idolater_n be_v infect_v for_o although_o it_o be_v altogether_o unlawful_a for_o man_n to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n in_o religion_n which_o god_n have_v not_o appoint_v yet_o do_v they_o invent_v every_o thing_n unaduised_o and_o set_v light_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o hand_n but_o stephen_n show_v that_o while_o they_o take_v such_o pleasure_n in_o this_o liberty_n they_o displease_v god_n so_o much_o the_o more_o but_o if_o we_o will_v have_v god_n to_o allow_v our_o worship_n we_o must_v abstain_v from_o the_o work_n of_o our_o hand_n that_o be_v from_o our_o own_o invention_n for_o all_o that_o which_o man_n invent_v of_o themselves_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o sacrilegious_a profanation_n the_o idol_n be_v proper_o so_o call_v reproachful_o as_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n nothing_o worth_a because_o no_o reason_n do_v suffer_v man_n to_o make_v god_n 42_o and_o god_n turn_v himself_o and_o give_v they_o up_o to_o worship_v the_o host_n of_o heaven_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n have_v you_o offer_v unto_o i_o slay_v beast_n and_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n o_o you_o house_n of_o israel_n 43_o and_o you_o take_v to_o you_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o moloch_n and_o the_o star_n of_o your_o god_n rempham_n and_o figure_n which_o you_o make_v to_o worship_v they_o therefore_o i_o will_v carry_v you_o away_o beyond_o babylon_n steven_n will_v here_o declare_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v never_o make_v a_o end_n of_o sin_v but_o that_o they_o wander_v far_o in_o their_o froward_a error_n so_o that_o that_o first_o fall_v of_o they_o be_v unto_o they_o as_o it_o be_v a_o entrance_n into_o a_o labyrinth_n and_o this_o do_v he_o assign_v unto_o the_o just_a vengeance_n of_o god_n that_o after_o that_o time_n their_o madness_n grow_v so_o that_o they_o get_v for_o one_o idol_n infinite_a this_o example_n teach_v we_o to_o be_v careful_a to_o follow_v the_o rule_n which_o god_n have_v set_v down_o because_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v turn_v even_o but_o a_o little_a a_o side_n from_o the_o same_o we_o must_v needs_o be_v carry_v too_o and_o fro_o with_o diverse_a dote_n we_o must_v needs_o be_v entangle_v in_o many_o superstition_n and_o be_v utter_o drown_v in_o the_o huge_a sink_n of_o error_n which_o punishment_n god_n in_o justice_n laith_v upon_o man_n which_o refuse_v to_o obey_v his_o word_n therefore_o stephen_n say_v that_o god_n be_v turn_v away_o which_o word_n import_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o turn_v his_o back_n for_o he_o have_v fasten_v his_o eye_n after_o a_o sort_n upon_o the_o people_n when_o he_o show_v his_o singular_a care_n which_o he_o take_v in_o govern_v they_o be_v offend_v with_o their_o fall_v away_o now_o he_o turn_v his_o face_n another_o way_n we_o may_v also_o hereby_o gather_v that_o we_o can_v not_o otherwise_o follow_v the_o right_a way_n save_v only_o when_o the_o lord_n
sake_n but_o only_o that_o he_o may_v exercise_v we_o in_o the_o study_n of_o godliness_n which_o argument_n be_v handle_v more_o at_o large_a psal_n 50._o for_o although_o this_o be_v a_o shameful_a foolishness_n to_o go_v about_o to_o feed_v god_n with_o sacrifice_n yet_o unless_o hypocrite_n be_v drown_v in_o the_o same_o they_o will_v make_v no_o such_o account_n of_o toy_n because_o all_o that_o be_v unsavery_a before_o god_n which_o dissent_v from_o the_o spiritual_a worship_n therefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o god_n seek_v we_o &_o not_o we_o which_o we_o have_v only_o at_o pleasure_n and_o hereby_o it_o appear_v also_o what_o great_a difference_n there_o be_v between_o true_a religion_n &_o the_o carnal_a invention_n of_o man_n 51_o you_o stiffnecked_a and_o of_o a_o uncircumcised_a heart_n and_o ear_n you_o have_v always_o resist_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o your_o father_n do_v so_o do_v you_o 52_o which_o of_o the_o prophet_n have_v not_o your_o father_n persecute_v and_o they_o have_v slay_v those_o which_o foretell_v of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o just_a of_o who_o you_o be_v now_o make_v the_o betrayer_n and_o murderer_n 53_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n in_o the_o disposition_n of_o angel_n and_o have_v not_o keep_v it_o 51_o for_n asmuch_o as_o steeven_n do_v not_o express_o answer_v the_o point_n of_o the_o accusation_n i_o be_o of_o their_o mind_n who_o think_v that_o he_o will_v have_v say_v more_o if_o his_o oration_n have_v not_o be_v break_v off_o with_o some_o uproar_n for_o we_o know_v what_o a_o session_n of_o judge_n he_o have_v therefore_o no_o marvel_n if_o they_o enforce_v he_o to_o hold_v his_o peace_n with_o noise_n &_o outcry_n and_o we_o see_v also_o that_o he_o do_v use_v long_a insinuation_n of_o set_a purpose_n that_o he_o may_v tame_v &_o appease_v they_o who_o be_v like_o brute_n beast_n most_o cruel_a but_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o their_o madness_n be_v then_o incense_v when_o he_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v most_o wicked_o corrupt_v the_o law_n that_o the_o temple_n be_v pollute_v with_o their_o superstition_n &_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o sincere_a among_o they_o because_o while_o they_o do_v stick_v in_o bare_a figure_n they_o do_v not_o worship_n god_n spiritual_o because_o they_o do_v not_o refer_v the_o ceremony_n unto_o the_o heavenly_a figure_n but_o though_o steeven_n do_v not_o enter_v the_o cause_n straight_o way_n but_o assay_v to_o make_v their_o fierce_a mind_n somewhat_o more_o gentle_a by_o little_a and_o little_a yet_o do_v he_o reason_n very_o fit_o to_o purge_v himself_o of_o the_o crime_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n these_o two_o thing_n as_o we_o have_v say_v be_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o question_n that_o steeven_n have_v blaspheme_v god_n and_o his_o temple_n that_o he_o go_v about_o to_o disannul_v the_o law_n that_o steeven_n may_v clear_v himself_o of_o both_o these_o false_a flander_n he_o begin_v at_o the_o call_n of_o abraham_n &_o declare_v that_o the_o jew_n excel_v the_o gentile_n not_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n not_o by_o any_o right_n of_o their_o own_o not_o by_o any_o merit_n of_o work_n but_o by_o a_o f_o …_o privilege_n because_o god_n have_v adopt_v they_o in_o the_o person_n of_o abraham_n this_o be_v also_o very_o pertinent_a to_o the_o cause_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o salvation_n be_v make_v with_o abraham_n before_o any_o temple_n or_o ceremony_n be_v yea_o before_o circumcision_n be_v appoint_v of_o which_o thing_n the_o jew_n do_v so_o boast_v that_o they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o worship_n of_o god_n without_o they_o neither_o any_o holiness_n after_o that_o he_o set_v down_o how_o wonderful_a and_o manifold_a the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v towards_o abraham_n his_o stock_n and_o again_o how_o wicked_o and_o froward_o they_o have_v refuse_v so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o their_o own_o merit_n that_o they_o be_v count_v god_n people_n but_o because_o god_n do_v choose_v they_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n be_v unworthy_a &_o do_v not_o cease_v to_o do_v they_o good_a though_o they_o be_v most_o unthankful_a their_o lofty_a and_o proud_a spirit_n may_v by_o this_o mean_n have_v be_v subdue_v tame_a and_o humble_v that_o be_v empty_v of_o that_o wind_n of_o foolish_a glory_n they_o may_v come_v unto_o the_o mediator_n three_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o angel_n be_v the_o governor_n and_o chief_a in_o give_v the_o law_n and_o deliver_v the_o people_n and_o that_o moses_n do_v so_o serve_v in_o his_o function_n that_o he_o teach_v that_o there_o shall_v come_v other_o prophet_n hereafter_o who_o shall_v notwithstanding_o have_v one_o which_o shall_v be_v the_o chief_a of_o they_o that_o he_o may_v make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o prophecy_n &_o that_o he_o may_v bring_v the_o perfect_a accomplishment_n of_o they_o all_o whereby_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o these_o be_v nothing_o less_o than_o moses_n his_o disciple_n who_o reject_v that_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v promise_v and_o commend_v in_o the_o law_n together_o with_o the_o author_n thereof_o last_o of_o all_o he_o show_v that_o all_o the_o old_a worship_n which_o be_v prescribe_v by_o moses_n be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v of_o itself_o but_o that_o it_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o another_o end_n because_o it_o be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o heavenly_a pattern_n and_o that_o the_o jew_n have_v always_o be_v wicked_a interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n because_o they_o conceive_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v earthly_a hereby_o be_v it_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o injury_n do_v to_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o law_n when_o christ_n be_v make_v as_o it_o be_v the_o end_n and_o truth_n of_o both_o but_o because_o the_o state_n of_o the_o cause_n do_v consist_v chief_o in_o this_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n do_v not_o proper_o consist_v in_o sacrifice_n and_o other_o thing_n and_o that_o all_o ceremony_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o shadow_n christ_n steeven_n be_v purpose_v to_o stand_v upon_o this_o point_n if_o the_o jew_n will_v have_v permit_v he_o but_o because_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o pith_n of_o the_o matter_n they_o can_v abide_v to_o hear_v any_o more_o they_o be_v so_o incense_v with_o fury_n the_o application_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o this_o cause_n which_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n be_v want_v and_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o use_v a_o sharp_a reprehension_n for_o a_o conclusion_n 33.3.5_o exod._n 32.9_o &_o 33.3.5_o you_o of_o a_o hard_a neck_n say_v he_o we_o see_v how_o soon_o he_o be_v offend_v with_o they_o with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n but_o because_o he_o see_v that_o he_o speak_v many_o thing_n to_o small_a end_n especial_o before_o deaf_a man_n he_o break_v off_o his_o doctrine_n this_o be_v a_o metaphor_n take_v from_o horse_n or_o ox_n which_o moses_n use_v often_o when_o he_o will_v say_v that_o his_o people_n be_v a_o rebellious_a people_n &_o disobedient_a to_o god_n and_o also_o unruly_a the_o upbraid_v which_o follow_v be_v of_o great_a force_n with_o they_o circumcision_n be_v unto_o they_o a_o veil_n &_o cover_v to_o cover_v all_o vice_n therefore_o when_o he_o call_v they_o uncircumcised_a in_o heart_n he_o do_v not_o only_o mean_v that_o they_o be_v rebellious_a against_o god_n &_o stubborn_a but_o that_o they_o be_v find_v treacherous_a &_o covenant_n breaker_n even_o in_o that_o sign_n whereof_o they_o do_v so_o great_o boast_v and_o so_o he_o turn_v that_o back_n most_o fit_o to_o their_o shame_n whereof_o they_o make_v boast_v to_o their_o glory_n for_o this_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o they_o have_v break_v the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o that_o their_o circumcision_n be_v void_a &_o profane_a this_o speech_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n for_o as_o god_n have_v appoint_v the_o sign_n so_o he_o will_v have_v the_o jew_n know_v to_o what_o end_n they_o be_v circumcise_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v circumcise_v their_o heart_n and_o all_o their_o corrupt_a affection_n to_o the_o lord_n as_o we_o read_v and_o now_o circumcise_v your_o heart_n to_o the_o lord_n 2.28_o rom._n 2.28_o wherefore_o the_o letter_n of_o circumcision_n as_o paul_n call_v it_o be_v a_o vain_a visure_n with_o god_n so_o forasmuch_o as_o at_o this_o day_n the_o spiritual_a wash_n be_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o baptism_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o that_o may_v well_o be_v object_v to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o baptism_n because_o our_o soul_n and_o flesh_n be_v pollute_v with_o filthiness_n you_o have_v always_o resist_v at_o the_o first_o steeven_n
his_o glory_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o quick_o frame_v by_o ananias_n his_o industry_n but_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v learn_v the_o first_o principle_n by_o man_n mouth_n he_o be_v extol_v by_o god_n unto_o high_a thing_n afterward_o he_o comprehend_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o preach_v brief_o when_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n he_o say_v short_o after_o that_o he_o be_v christ_n and_o understand_v thus_o much_o that_o when_o paul_n entreat_v out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o true_a office_n of_o the_o messiah_n he_o teach_v also_o that_o all_o whatsoever_o be_v promise_v of_o and_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v for_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o messiah_n be_v reveal_v and_o give_v in_o christ_n for_o the_o word_n signify_v thus_o much_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o preach_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v undoubted_o a_o principle_n among_o the_o jew_n that_o there_o shall_v a_o redeemer_n come_v from_o god_n who_o shall_v restore_v all_o thing_n to_o a_o happy_a estate_n paul_n teach_v that_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n be_v he_o which_o he_o can_v do_v unless_o he_o shake_v off_o those_o gross_a error_n which_o he_o have_v conceive_v of_o the_o earthly_a kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o paul_n declare_v how_o christ_n be_v promise_v in_o the_o law_n and_o to_o what_o end_n but_o because_o all_o tend_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v prove_v that_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n be_v he_o of_o who_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n bare_a witness_n therefore_o luke_n be_v content_a with_o this_o one_o word_n only_o 21_o they_o be_v all_o amaze_v this_o be_v add_v that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v acknowledge_v for_o see_v that_o the_o zeal_n of_o paul_n against_o the_o gospel_n be_v open_o know_v they_o see_v no_o other_o cause_n of_o such_o a_o sudden_a change_n but_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v also_o one_o fruit_n of_o the_o miracle_n that_o they_o all_o wonder_n at_o he_o be_v make_v a_o new_a man_n so_o sudden_o so_o that_o his_o doctrine_n do_v the_o more_o move_v their_o mind_n whereas_o they_o say_v that_o he_o rage_v horrible_o with_o great_a cruelty_n and_o that_o he_o come_v of_o late_a to_o damascus_n that_o he_o may_v proceed_v in_o his_o purpose_n these_o circumstance_n serve_v to_o augment_v the_o miracle_n we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o phrase_n those_o which_o call_v upon_o this_o name_n which_o witness_v that_o the_o godly_a do_v so_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o place_v all_o their_o hope_n of_o salvation_n in_o he_o according_a to_o that_o these_o man_n put_v their_o trust_n in_o chariot_n and_o other_o in_o horse_n but_o we_o will_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n final_o whatsoever_o the_o scripture_n command_v concern_v calling_n upon_o the_o name_n of_o god_n it_o agree_v to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n 22_o and_o saul_n wax_v strong_a luke_n do_v not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n commend_v the_o bold_a zeal_n of_o paul_n in_o confess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o use_v strong_a reason_n to_o convince_v the_o jew_n he_o wax_v strong_a say_v he_o that_o be_v he_o get_v the_o victory_n in_o disputation_n his_o confession_n do_v carry_v with_o it_o great_a force_n and_o efficacy_n because_o be_v furnish_v with_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o such_o other_o help_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o do_v as_o it_o be_v tread_v all_o his_o adversary_n under_o his_o foot_n for_o the_o word_n confound_v which_o luke_n use_v do_v signify_v that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o paul_n do_v urge_v they_o out_o of_o measure_n they_o be_v so_o strike_v that_o they_o can_v not_o tell_v where_o they_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o confound_a be_v express_v because_o paul_n prove_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n for_o the_o sense_n be_v this_o that_o even_o when_o the_o jew_n be_v most_o desirous_a to_o resist_v they_o be_v overcome_v &_o confound_v so_o that_o paul_n try_v by_o experience_n that_o that_o be_v most_o true_a which_o he_o himself_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a to_o convince_v also_o he_o perform_v that_o which_o he_o require_v elsewhere_o of_o a_o bishop_n and_o teacher_n for_o he_o be_v arm_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o maintain_v the_o truth_n and_o luke_n set_v down_o two_o thing_n that_o paul_n so_o gate_n the_o victory_n in_o dispute_v 1.7_o 2._o tim._n 3.16_o titus_n 1.7_o that_o he_o overthrow_v the_o jew_n and_o yet_o their_o stubbernesse_n be_v not_o break_v and_o tame_v that_o they_o yield_v to_o the_o truth_n because_o their_o conscience_n rage_v nevertheless_o inward_o and_o be_v throw_v down_o from_o their_o false_a opinion_n they_o do_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o christ_n whence_o have_v paul_n this_o victory_n save_v only_o because_o the_o scripture_n be_v his_o sword_n therefore_o so_o often_o as_o heretic_n stand_v up_o to_o resist_v the_o true_a faith_n so_o often_o as_o wicked_a man_n endeavour_n to_o overthrow_v all_o godliness_n so_o often_o as_o the_o ungodly_a do_v obstinate_o resist_v let_v we_o remember_v that_o we_o must_v fetch_v armour_n hence_o because_o the_o papist_n find_v no_o weapon_n in_o scripture_n yea_o because_o they_o see_v that_o it_o make_v quite_o against_o they_o they_o fly_v unto_o this_o miserable_a fortress_n that_o they_o must_v not_o dispute_v with_o heretic_n and_o that_o there_o can_v no_o certain_a thing_n be_v set_v down_o out_o of_o scripture_n but_o if_o satan_n himself_o be_v vanquish_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o word_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v able_a to_o put_v heretic_n to_o flight_n not_o that_o they_o will_v submit_v themselves_o or_o make_v a_o end_n of_o murmur_a but_o because_o they_o shall_v lie_v overcome_v in_o themselves_o and_o if_o so_o be_v it_o we_o covet_v to_o escape_v this_o trouble_n let_v we_o raise_v no_o tumult_n against_o god_n but_o let_v we_o with_o a_o quiet_a and_o meek_a spirit_n receive_v that_o peace_n which_o the_o scripture_n offer_v us._n 23_o when_o many_o day_n be_v fulfil_v he_o say_v that_o many_o day_n be_v expire_v that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o paul_n have_v some_o space_n of_o time_n grant_v he_o wherein_o he_o may_v do_v good_a for_o although_o the_o jew_n do_v resist_v he_o even_o from_o the_o first_o day_n yet_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o suffer_v the_o course_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v well_o to_o be_v break_v off_o so_o soon_o so_o he_o do_v with_o his_o wonderful_a counsel_n hinder_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o enemy_n stay_v their_o endeavour_n restrain_v their_o malice_n and_o madness_n while_o that_o he_o further_v the_o gospel_n and_o also_o we_o see_v what_o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v for_o when_o the_o wicked_a see_v that_o they_o be_v unable_a to_o resist_v they_o be_v carry_v headlong_o unto_o bloody_a fury_n they_o will_v glad_o contemn_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o they_o can_v but_o because_o they_o be_v enforce_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o to_o feel_v the_o force_n thereof_o they_o run_v headlong_o like_o furious_a beast_n with_o blind_a violence_n the_o unaduised_a and_o rash_a heat_n of_o zeal_n will_v always_o almost_o break_v out_o into_o such_o cruelty_n unless_o man_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o be_v assure_o horrible_a blindness_n for_o why_o be_v they_o so_o mad_a save_v only_o because_o their_o wound_a conscience_n do_v vex_v they_o but_o god_n do_v by_o this_o mean_n punish_v their_o hypocrisy_n who_o do_v therefore_o hate_v sound_n religion_n because_o be_v friend_n of_o darkness_n they_o fly_v the_o light_n furthermore_o we_o see_v how_o sweet_o these_o preposterous_a zealous_a fellow_n grant_v themselves_o liberty_n to_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o lu_v when_o satan_n have_v once_o prick_v they_o forward_o to_o persecute_v the_o truth_n for_o they_o fear_v not_o to_o take_v counsel_n under_o colour_n of_o zeal_n to_o put_v a_o man_n to_o death_n which_o they_o know_v be_v mere_a wickedness_n as_o at_o this_o day_n the_o papist_n think_v that_o they_o may_v do_v whatsoever_o they_o will_v so_o they_o can_v quench_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o rage_v not_o only_o with_o sword_n but_o they_o go_v about_o by_o lay_v in_o wait_n by_o treachery_n and_o by_o most_o execrable_a mean_n to_o destroy_v us._n we_o must_v first_o beware_v that_o that_o do_v not_o befall_v we_o that_o we_o entangle_v not_o ourselves_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o evil_a cause_n second_o that_o we_o handle_v those_o cause_n well_o which_o we_o know_v be_v good_a but_o
the_o province_n but_o they_o have_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o army_n out_o of_o italy_n therefore_o cornelius_n be_v a_o italian_a bear_v but_o he_o live_v at_o caesarea_n with_o his_o hundred_o to_o guard_v the_o city_n for_o the_o roman_n be_v wont_v so_o to_o distribute_v their_o place_n of_o abode_n that_o every_o city_n of_o renoun_n may_v have_v a_o garrison_n to_o stay_v sudden_a uproar_n a_o rare_a example_n that_o a_o soldier_n be_v so_o devout_a towards_o god_n so_o upright_o and_o courteous_a towards_o man_n for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o italian_n when_o as_o they_o be_v carry_v into_o the_o province_n to_o live_v in_o warfare_n run_v to_o and_o fro_o like_o hungry_a wolf_n to_o get_v some_o prey_n they_o have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n no_o more_o religion_n than_o beast_n they_o have_v as_o great_a care_n of_o innocence_n as_o cutthroat_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o virtue_n of_o cornelius_n deserve_v the_o great_a commendation_n in_o that_o lead_v a_o soldier_n life_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n most_o corrupt_a he_o serve_v god_n holy_o and_o live_v amongst_o man_n without_o do_v any_o hurt_n or_o injury_n and_o this_o be_v no_o small_a amplification_n of_o his_o praise_n in_o that_o cast_n away_o superstition_n wherein_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o bring_v up_o he_o embrace_v the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n for_o we_o know_v what_o account_n the_o italian_n make_v of_o themselves_o and_o how_o proud_o they_o despise_v other_o and_o the_o jew_n be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o such_o contempt_n that_o for_o their_o sake_n pure_a religion_n be_v count_v infamous_a &_o almost_o execrable_a see_v that_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v hinder_v cornelius_n but_o that_o forsake_v his_o idol_n he_o do_v embrace_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n alone_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o rare_a and_o singular_a sincerity_n moreover_o he_o can_v find_v scarce_o any_o thing_n among_o the_o jew_n wherewith_o he_o can_v be_v allure_v unto_o the_o study_n of_o godliness_n because_o there_o be_v then_o scarce_o one_o amongst_o a_o thousand_o which_o have_v even_o some_o small_a smattering_n of_o the_o law_n and_o undoubted_o cornelius_n have_v light_a upon_o some_o good_a worshipper_n of_o god_n who_o be_v sound_o from_o corrupt_a opinion_n do_v expound_v unto_o he_o the_o law_n faithful_o without_o mix_v any_o leaven_n therewith_o but_o because_o luke_n give_v he_o many_o title_n of_o commendation_n we_o must_v note_v they_o al._n 2_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o godly_a man_n and_o one_o that_o fear_v god_n second_o that_o like_o a_o good_a householder_n he_o have_v a_o care_n to_o instruct_v his_o family_n he_o praise_v he_o afterward_o for_o the_o office_n of_o love_n because_o he_o be_v beneficial_a towards_o all_o the_o people_n and_o last_o that_o he_o pray_v god_n continual_o the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o cornelius_n be_v a_o man_n of_o singular_a virtue_n wherein_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o godly_a consist_v so_o that_o his_o life_n be_v frame_v in_o all_o point_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o god_n prescribe_v unto_o us._n and_o because_o the_o law_n be_v contain_v in_o two_o table_n luke_n commend_v in_o the_o former_a place_n cornelius_n his_o godliness_n second_o he_o descend_v unto_o the_o second_o part_n that_o he_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o love_n towards_o man_n this_o be_v very_o profitable_a to_o be_v mark_v because_o we_o have_v a_o way_n to_o live_v well_o describe_v in_o his_o person_n wherefore_o in_o order_v the_o life_n well_o let_v faith_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o foundation_n which_o be_v take_v away_o all_o other_o virtue_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o smoke_n luke_n reckon_v up_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o prayer_n as_o fruit_n &_o testimony_n of_o godliness_n and_o of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o that_o for_o good_a cause_n for_o religion_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n &_o the_o reverence_n of_o he_o neither_o can_v any_o man_n be_v count_v godly_a save_v he_o who_o acknowledge_v god_n to_o be_v his_o father_n &_o lord_n do_v addict_v himself_o whole_o to_o he_o and_o let_v we_o know_v that_o voluntary_a fear_n be_v commend_v in_o this_o place_n when_o those_o man_n submit_v themselves_o to_o god_n willing_o and_o from_o their_o heart_n who_o due_o consider_v with_o themselves_o what_o be_v due_a to_o he_o moreover_o because_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n do_v with_o feign_a trifle_n corrupt_a and_o deprave_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n luke_n add_v for_o good_a cause_n that_o cornelius_n pray_v continual_o whereby_o he_o do_v signify_v that_o he_o prove_v not_o his_o godliness_n only_o with_o external_a ceremony_n but_o that_o he_o worship_v god_n spiritual_o when_o as_o he_o exercise_v himself_o in_o prayer_n we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o continuance_n of_o his_o prayer_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o he_o do_v not_o pray_v only_o coldlie_a after_o the_o common_a custom_n but_o that_o he_o be_v earnest_o bend_v to_o prayer_n as_o the_o continual_a benefit_n of_o god_n do_v exhort_v we_o and_o prick_v we_o forward_o thereunto_o and_o the_o force_n of_o faith_n ought_v there_o to_o show_v itself_o wherefore_o let_v every_o one_o of_o we_o exhort_v himself_o to_o persevere_v in_o prayer_n by_o the_o example_n of_o cornelius_n with_o all_o his_o house_n we_o must_v not_o light_o pass_v over_o this_o commendation_n that_o cornelius_n have_v a_o church_n in_o his_o house_n and_o sure_o a_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v god_n to_o be_v banish_v from_o his_o house_n for_o how_o unmeet_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o for_o he_o to_o maintain_v his_o own_o right_n stout_o that_o his_o wife_n child_n servant_n and_o maid_n may_v obey_v he_o and_o not_o to_o regard_v that_o god_n be_v disobey_v it_o shall_v sometime_o fall_v out_o so_o that_o a_o godly_a man_n can_v have_v even_o his_o wife_n to_o be_v of_o his_o mind_n yet_o he_o which_o rule_v other_o must_v endeavour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o have_v god_n obey_v and_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o meet_v then_o that_o we_o shall_v consecrate_v all_o we_o to_o god_n as_o ourselves_o therefore_o if_o a_o godly_a man_n have_v child_n which_o be_v unlike_o he_o or_o a_o wife_n of_o evil_a condition_n or_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a servant_n let_v he_o not_o wink_v ne_o yet_o suffer_v his_o house_n to_o be_v pollute_v through_o his_o slothfulness_n the_o diligence_n of_o cornelius_n be_v not_o so_o much_o commend_v as_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o have_v his_o house_n obedient_a unto_o he_o in_o godliness_n and_o we_o must_v not_o omit_v the_o circumstance_n that_o he_o instruct_v his_o family_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n set_v light_n by_o the_o fear_n of_o danger_n which_o do_v hang_v over_o his_o head_n therefore_o for_o the_o jewish_a religion_n be_v in_o great_a contempt_n and_o no_o citizen_n of_o rome_n may_v free_o receive_v any_o strange_a religion_n as_o they_o call_v it_o wherefore_o although_o the_o sincere_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v evil_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o world_n yet_o be_v it_o too_o corrupt_a freghtfulnesse_n if_o that_o unjust_a hatred_n hinder_v any_o man_n from_o offer_v his_o family_n to_o god_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n by_o godly_a instruction_n give_v alm_n there_o be_v also_o the_o figure_n synecdoche_n in_o this_o member_n for_o as_o it_o be_v say_v even_o now_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v prove_v by_o prayer_n so_o now_o when_o luke_n speak_v of_o love_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o one_o kind_n whereby_o he_o show_v that_o cornelius_n be_v a_o liberal_a and_o bountiful_a man_n for_o our_o godliness_n ought_v so_o to_o appear_v to_o man_n that_o we_o declare_v that_o we_o fear_v god_n by_o use_v bountifulness_n and_o justice_n the_o word_n alm_n be_v translate_v unto_o those_o external_a good_a work_n wherewith_o we_o help_v the_o poor_a forasmuch_o as_o miserecordia_fw-la or_o mercy_n be_v the_o inward_a affection_n of_o the_o hart_n proper_o for_o from_o this_o fountain_n spring_v true_a and_o well_o order_v bountifulness_n if_o the_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n of_o our_o brethren_n do_v move_v we_o to_o compassion_n if_o consider_v the_o unity_n which_o be_v among_o we_o 58.7_o isa_n 58.7_o we_o foster_v and_o cherish_v they_o as_o we_o will_v cherish_v our_o own_o flesh_n and_o study_v to_o help_v they_o as_o we_o will_v help_v our_o own_o member_n hypocrite_n be_v in_o deed_n sometime_o liberal_a or_o at_o least_o bountiful_a but_o howsoever_o they_o waste_v all_o yet_o no_o relief_n which_o they_o shall_v bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a shall_v be_v whorthie_a to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o alm_n for_o we_o
17_o though_o he_o leave_v not_o himself_o without_o witness_n do_v good_a give_v to_o we_o from_o heaven_n rain_n and_o fruitful_a time_n replenish_n with_o food_n and_o gladness_n our_o heart_n 18_o and_o when_o they_o have_v thus_o say_v they_o scarce_o appease_v the_o multitude_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v sacrifice_n to_o they_o 14_o when_o the_o apostle_n have_v hear_v in_o that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n rend_v their_o garment_n and_o leap_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o multitude_n it_o appear_v thereby_o how_o zealous_a they_o be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v content_n only_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n they_o trouble_v the_o preparation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n so_o much_o as_o they_o be_v able_a it_o come_v to_o pass_v sometime_o that_o even_a hypocrite_n refuse_v excessive_a honour_n but_o they_o rather_o provoke_v the_o simple_a to_o give_v it_o they_o with_o their_o feign_a modesty_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n for_o they_o declare_v both_o by_o word_n and_o also_o by_o all_o gesture_n of_o body_n that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o take_v pleasure_n in_o that_o worship_n which_o the_o man_n of_o lystra_n give_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o do_v utter_o detest_v it_o this_o be_v holy_a anger_n wherewith_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n must_v be_v inflame_v so_o often_o as_o they_o see_v his_o glory_n profane_v and_o overthrow_v by_o the_o sacrilege_n of_o man_n and_o assure_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a otherwise_o to_o serve_v god_n sincere_o and_o faithful_o unless_o he_o put_v on_o that_o affection_n of_o jealousy_n whereof_o paul_n speak_v in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 11.2_o 2._o cor._n 11.2_o that_o those_o man_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o his_o church_n be_v no_o less_o courageous_a and_o stout_a to_o defend_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o lord_n than_o a_o husband_n be_v vigilant_a to_o defend_v his_o wife_n chastity_n therefore_o we_o must_v take_v good_a heed_n that_o we_o suffer_v not_o that_o honour_n to_o be_v give_v we_o which_o may_v darken_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o rather_o so_o soon_o as_o there_o appear_v any_o profane_v of_o god_n glory_n let_v this_o heat_n break_v out_o whereof_o we_o have_v a_o example_n in_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n and_o though_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v especial_o to_o be_v endue_v with_o this_o zeal_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o one_o of_o the_o godly_a which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v sore_o displease_v when_o he_o see_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n pollute_v or_o give_v to_o some_o other_o because_o it_o be_v write_v of_o all_o the_o zeal_n of_o thy_o house_n have_v eat_v i_o up_o and_o the_o rebuke_n of_o they_o that_o rebuke_v thou_o fell_a on_o i_o 69.10_o psal_n 69.10_o and_o if_o so_o be_v it_o holy_a man_n be_v yet_o compass_v about_o with_o the_o flesh_n do_v so_o great_o detest_v idolatry_n how_o shall_v we_o think_v they_o to_o be_v affect_v now_o when_o they_o be_v strip_v out_o of_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n whenas_o the_o world_n abuse_v their_o name_n and_o person_n unto_o superstition_n it_o think_v it_o do_v they_o a_o great_a pleasure_n but_o it_o be_v great_o deceive_v for_o they_o will_v stand_v up_o first_o against_o their_o worshipper_n and_o will_v in_o deed_n declare_v that_o they_o never_o make_v more_o account_n of_o any_o thing_n then_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n may_v remain_v whole_a and_o sound_a to_o he_o moreover_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a injury_n do_v to_o they_o than_o when_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v take_v from_o god_n be_v give_v to_o they_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v when_o any_o divine_a thing_n be_v ascribe_v and_o give_v they_o whereas_o luke_n say_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n do_v rend_v their_o garment_n it_o appear_v by_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o this_o rite_n &_o custom_n be_v use_v among_o the_o man_n of_o the_o east_n country_n so_o often_o as_o they_o will_v by_o external_a gesture_n express_v either_o great_a sorrow_n or_o detest_a of_o any_o thing_n when_o luke_n call_v barnabas_n a_o apostle_n together_o with_o paul_n he_o extend_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n far_o than_o unto_o the_o chief_a order_n which_o christ_n appoint_v in_o his_o church_n like_v as_o paul_n make_v andronicus_n and_o junias_n excellent_a among_o the_o apostle_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v speak_v proper_o they_o be_v evangelist_n and_o not_o apostle_n unless_o peradventure_o because_o barnabas_n be_v make_v paul_n his_o fellow_n in_o office_n we_o place_v they_o both_o in_o like_a degree_n of_o office_n so_o may_v he_o be_v true_o call_v a_o apostle_n 15_o man_n why_o do_v you_o those_o thing_n they_o begin_v with_o a_o reprehension_n as_o the_o matter_n do_v require_v that_o do_v they_o show_v to_o what_o end_n they_o be_v send_v afterward_o they_o preach_v concern_v the_o only_a god_n and_o show_v that_o he_o be_v unknowen_a to_o the_o world_n last_o that_o they_o may_v more_o strong_o pluck_v out_o of_o their_o heart_n the_o deceit_n and_o sleight_n of_o the_o devil_n they_o teach_v that_o this_o ignorance_n be_v without_o excuse_n therefore_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o sermon_n be_v a_o reprehension_n wherein_o the_o man_n of_o lystra_n be_v condemn_v for_o worship_v mortal_a man_n preposterous_o in_o steed_n of_o god_n though_o the_o reason_n which_o they_o allege_v seem_v to_o be_v cold_a for_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o gather_v thence_o that_o it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a to_o worship_v those_o who_o be_v deliver_v from_o humane_a misery_n by_o death_n by_o this_o mean_v all_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v stand_v untouched_a which_o be_v wont_a to_o count_v none_o god_n but_o those_o who_o be_v dead_a with_o the_o same_o colour_n also_o have_v the_o papist_n colour_v their_o idolatry_n who_o worship_n rather_o the_o dead_a man_n bone_n stone_n and_o wood_n then_o live_v man_n in_o who_o nose_n thrille_n be_v breath_n i_o answer_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n draw_v this_o argument_n from_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v now_o in_o hand_n we_o be_v miserable_a man_n therefore_o you_o do_v false_o and_o filthy_o imagine_v we_o to_o be_v god_n &_o worship_v we_o as_o god_n if_o idolatry_n be_v handle_v general_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o perpetual_a reason_n to_o condemn_v it_o &_o shall_v alone_o be_v sufficient_a enough_o that_o the_o perfect_a and_o whole_a worship_n of_o godliness_n be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o &_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v profane_v so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v in_o any_o point_n give_v to_o creature_n whether_o they_o be_v angel_n or_o man_n or_o star_n but_o occasion_n shall_v oftentimes_o be_v offer_v that_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v speak_v against_o one_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n which_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o another_o neither_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o same_o and_o yet_o shall_v they_o be_v of_o no_o small_a force_n for_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v in_o hand_n as_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n by_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v mortal_a man_n subject_a to_o diverse_a calamity_n have_v a_o fit_a reason_n to_o reprove_v the_o fury_n and_o madness_n of_o the_o people_n we_o preach_v to_o you_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o contrary_n for_o here_o they_o show_v that_o the_o end_n of_o their_o come_n be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v remove_v superstition_n which_o have_v hitherto_o reign_v for_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v do_v the_o miracle_n move_v you_o then_o give_v credence_n to_o our_o word_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o our_o ambassage_n be_v that_o all_o feign_a godhead_n wherewith_o the_o world_n have_v hitherto_o be_v deceive_v may_v be_v do_v away_o &_o perish_v and_o this_o be_v a_o general_a doctrine_n whereby_o they_o do_v not_o only_o appease_v the_o present_a madness_n but_o also_o reprehend_v all_o manner_n superstition_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v contrary_a to_o or_o disagree_v with_o the_o rule_n of_o godliness_n for_o without_o doubt_n they_o call_v all_o that_o vain_a which_o man_n have_v invent_v to_o themselves_o of_o their_o own_o brain_n and_o we_o must_v mark_v this_o definition_n that_o all_o religion_n be_v vain_a which_o depart_v and_o degenerate_v from_o the_o pure_a and_o simple_a word_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o express_a mention_n make_v in_o deed_n of_o the_o word_n because_o they_o speak_v to_o the_o gentile_n but_o because_o god_n be_v no_o otherwise_o right_o worship_v then_o according_a to_o his_o appointment_n it_o follow_v out_o of_o paul_n his_o word_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o man_n depart_v from_o that_o worship_n which_o god_n have_v command_v and_o do_v allow_v they_o be_v weary_v foolish_o and_o vain_o with_o a_o vain_a and_o
free_a power_n to_o use_v they_o whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v be_v not_o without_o exception_n because_o there_o be_v a_o diverse_a respect_n to_o be_v have_v of_o ceremony_n for_o circumcision_n be_v not_o in_o the_o same_o place_n wherein_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v which_o be_v ordain_v for_o the_o purge_n of_o sin_n wherefore_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o paul_n to_o circumcise_v timotheus_n it_o have_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n this_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o general_a thing_n that_o all_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o law_n do_v cease_v at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v to_o continue_v but_o for_o a_o time_n as_o touch_v faith_n and_o conscience_n but_o concern_v the_o use_n we_o must_v know_v this_o that_o it_o be_v indifferent_a and_o leave_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o godly_a for_o a_o short_a time_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n we_o must_v note_v the_o shortness_n of_o time_n whereof_o i_o speak_v to_o wit_n until_o the_o plain_a manifestation_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o some_o learned_a man_n be_v gross_o deceive_v in_o this_o point_n who_o think_v that_o circumcision_n do_v yet_o take_v place_n among_o the_o jew_n whereas_o paul_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v superfluous_a when_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o christ_n by_o baptism_n it_o be_v better_a and_o more_o true_o say_v in_o the_o old_a proverb_n that_o the_o synagogue_n be_v to_o be_v bury_v with_o honour_n 2.11.12_o coll._n 2.11.12_o now_o it_o rest_v that_o we_o declare_v how_o far_o forth_o the_o use_n of_o circumcision_n be_v indifferent_a that_o shall_v easy_o appear_v by_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o liberty_n because_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o general_o know_v 2.3_o galat._n 2.3_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v have_v some_o prerogative_n grant_v they_o therefore_o until_o it_o may_v be_v better_o know_v that_o the_o adoption_n be_v deduct_v from_o the_o lineage_n &_o kindred_n of_o abraham_n unto_o all_o the_o gentile_n it_o be_v lawful_a so_o far_o as_o edification_n do_v require_v to_o retain_v the_o sign_n of_o difference_n for_o see_v that_o paul_n will_v not_o circumcise_v titus_n and_o do_v avouch_v that_o the_o same_o be_v well_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o use_v this_o ceremony_n always_o and_o without_o choice_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o have_v respect_n unto_o edification_n and_o unto_o the_o public_a commodity_n of_o the_o church_n because_o he_o can_v not_o circumcise_v titus_n unless_o he_o will_v betray_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o lay_v himself_o open_a to_o the_o slander_n of_o the_o adversary_n he_o abstain_v from_o the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o ceremony_n which_o he_o do_v use_v in_o timotheus_n when_o he_o see_v that_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o church_n hereby_o it_o do_v easy_o appear_v what_o horrible_a confusion_n do_v reign_v in_o popery_n there_o be_v there_o a_o huge_a heap_n of_o ceremony_n and_o to_o what_o end_n but_o that_o they_o may_v have_v in_o steed_n of_o one_o veil_n of_o the_o old_a temple_n a_o hundred_o god_n do_v abrogate_v those_o ceremony_n which_o he_o have_v command_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v shine_v more_o clear_o man_n dare_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o bring_v in_o new_a and_o that_o without_o keep_v any_o measure_n after_o this_o come_v in_o a_o wicked_a surmise_n that_o all_o these_o serve_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n at_o length_n follow_v the_o devilish_a confidence_n of_o merit_n now_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o such_o ceremony_n be_v neither_o veil_n nor_o sepulcher_n wherewith_o christ_n be_v cover_v but_o rather_o stink_v dunghill_n wherein_o faith_n and_o religion_n be_v chock_a those_o who_o make_v the_o use_n thereof_o general_o free_a do_v ascribe_v more_o to_o the_o pope_n than_o the_o lord_n grant_v to_o his_o law_n it_o be_v to_o no_o end_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o mass_n and_o of_o such_o filthiness_n which_o contain_v in_o themselves_o manifest_a idolatry_n they_o all_o know_v this_o luke_n tell_v we_o that_o this_o be_v paul_n drift_n to_o make_v a_o entrance_n for_o timotheus_n unto_o the_o jew_n lest_o they_o shall_v abhor_v he_o as_o a_o profane_a man_n they_o know_v all_o say_v he_o that_o his_o father_n be_v a_o grecian_a therefore_o because_o the_o mother_n have_v no_o power_n over_o their_o child_n they_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o he_o be_v uncircumcised_a let_v the_o reader_n note_v here_o by_o the_o way_n how_o miserable_a the_o bondage_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v then_o eunicha_n mother_n to_o timotheus_n be_v one_o of_o the_o small_a remnant_n which_o the_o very_a jew_n themselves_o count_v a_o monster_n &_o yet_o be_v marry_v to_o a_o man_n which_o be_v a_o infidel_n she_o dare_v not_o consecrate_v her_o child_n to_o god_n no_o she_o dare_v not_o so_o much_o as_o give_v they_o the_o external_a sign_n of_o grace_n and_o yet_o she_o cease_v not_o therefore_o to_o instruct_v her_o son_n of_o a_o child_n holy_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o true_a worship_n a_o example_n sure_o worthy_a to_o be_v follow_v of_o woman_n who_o their_o husband_n affray_n with_o their_o tyrannous_a government_n from_o keep_v and_o train_v up_o their_o child_n and_o family_n chaste_o in_o true_a godliness_n grecian_n be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n for_o a_o gentile_a after_o the_o old_a and_o common_a custom_n of_o the_o scripture_n 4_o they_o deliver_v they_o the_o decree_n to_o keep_v in_o these_o word_n luke_n do_v signify_v unto_o we_o how_o desirous_a paul_n be_v of_o peace_n the_o best_a and_o strong_a bond_n to_o keep_v and_o foster_v peace_n among_o the_o church_n be_v to_o keep_v that_o which_o be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n when_o paul_n take_v great_a pain_n about_o that_o he_o take_v great_a heed_n lest_o through_o his_o fault_n there_o arise_v any_o trouble_n and_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o that_o continue_v but_o for_o a_o time_n because_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o see_v the_o danger_n of_o offence_n cease_v he_o do_v quite_o unburthen_v the_o church_n and_o set_v apart_o the_o decree_n he_o make_v that_o free_a which_o the_o apostle_n have_v there_o forbid_v and_o yet_o do_v not_o he_o cancel_v or_o violate_v by_o that_o abrogation_n that_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v decree_v or_o contemn_v the_o author_n themselves_o because_o they_o be_v not_o determine_v to_o establish_v a_o perpetual_a law_n but_o only_o to_o mitigate_v for_o a_o short_a time_n that_o which_o may_v hurt_v weak_a conscience_n as_o i_o do_v more_o at_o large_a declare_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n whereby_o the_o folly_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v sufficient_o refute_v who_o do_v grievous_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o be_v far_o unlike_o paul_n because_o we_o will_v have_v the_o conscience_n of_o the_o godly_a govern_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n alone_o set_v light_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o call_v they_o and_o not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v paul_n mean_v nothing_o less_o then_o to_o ensnare_v man_n conscience_n in_o the_o snare_n of_o necessity_n for_o he_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o himself_o when_o he_o cry_v in_o other_o place_n 1.15_o tit._n 1.15_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v clean_o to_o the_o clean_a and_o again_o he_o which_o be_v clean_o eat_v all_o thing_n and_o again_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_n 14.2.17_o rom._n 14.2.17_o and_o again_o meat_n do_v not_o commend_v we_o to_o god_n again_o eat_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v sell_v in_o the_o shambles_n ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n but_o in_o one_o word_n he_o reconcile_v those_o thing_n which_o may_v otherwise_o seem_v to_o disagree_v 8.8_o ●_o cor._n 8.8_o when_o he_o command_v to_o abstain_v from_o thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n for_o another_o man_n conscience_n sake_n nevertheless_o he_o take_v great_a heed_n that_o he_o bound_v not_o godly_a soul_n with_o the_o law_n of_o man_n therefore_o we_o attempt_v nothing_o at_o this_o day_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o or_o disagree_v with_o paul_n but_o the_o papist_n mock_v we_o too_o gross_o when_o they_o compare_v their_o law_n with_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n invent_v no_o new_a worship_n of_o god_n they_o have_v erect_v no_o new_a spiritual_a government_n but_o for_o the_o desire_n they_o have_v to_o maintain_v peace_n they_o exhort_v the_o gentile_n that_o they_o will_v yield_v a_o little_a to_o the_o jew_n before_o the_o pope_n ca●_n excuse_v his_o law_n under_o this_o colour_n he_o must_v first_o change_v they_o whole_o and_o
word_n sabaoth_o that_o luke_n speak_v of_o the_o jew_n second_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o commend_v the_o godliness_n of_o lydia_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o she_o be_v a_o jewesse_n which_o matter_n need_v no_o long_a disputation_n forasmuch_o as_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a offence_n for_o the_o grecian_n &_o roman_n to_o celebrate_v the_o sabaoth_n or_o to_o take_v up_o jewish_a rite_n now_o we_o understand_v that_o the_o jew_n make_v choice_n of_o the_o river_n bank_n that_o they_o may_v there_o pray_v not_o for_o any_o superstition_n sake_n but_o because_o they_o shun_v the_o company_n of_o man_n &_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n if_o any_o man_n object_n why_o do_v not_o every_o man_n pray_v in_o his_o house_n private_o the_o answer_n be_v ready_a that_o this_o be_v a_o solemn_a rite_n of_o pray_v to_o testify_v godliness_n &_o that_o be_v far_o from_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n they_o may_v one_o exhort_v another_o to_o worship_n god_n alone_o &_o that_o they_o may_v nourish_v the_o religion_n receive_v of_o the_o father_n among_o themselves_o as_o touch_v paul_n &_o his_o fellow_n who_o be_v late_o come_v it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o they_o come_v thither_o not_o only_o to_o pray_v but_o also_o because_o they_o hope_v to_o do_v some_o good_a for_o it_o be_v a_o fit_a place_n for_o they_o to_o teach_v in_o be_v far_o from_o noise_n &_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v more_o attentive_a to_o hear_v the_o word_n who_o come_v thither_o to_o pray_v luke_n put_v the_o day_n of_o the_o sabbath_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o sabaoth_v where_o follow_v erasmus_n i_o have_v translate_v it_o there_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v prayer_n the_o old_a interpreter_n have_v do_v seem_v and_o the_o word_n nomizesthai_fw-mi have_v both_o signification_n among_o the_o grecian_n yet_o this_o sense_n be_v more_o fit_a for_o this_o present_a place_n that_o they_o do_v common_o use_v to_o have_v prayer_n there_o we_o speak_v to_o the_o woman_n either_o that_o place_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o assembly_n of_o woman_n or_o else_o religion_n be_v cold_a among_o man_n so_o that_o they_o come_v more_o slow_o howsoever_o it_o be_v we_o see_v that_o the_o holy_a man_n omit_v no_o occasion_n or_o opportunity_n because_o they_o vouchsafe_v to_o offer_v the_o gospel_n even_o to_o woman_n alone_o furthermore_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o seem_v likely_a to_o i_o that_o man_n and_o woman_n make_v their_o prayer_n there_o together_o i_o suppose_v that_o luke_n omit_v the_o man_n either_o because_o they_o will_v not_o hear_v or_o else_o because_o they_o profit_v nothing_o by_o hear_v 14_o a_o woman_n name_v lydia_n if_o they_o have_v be_v hear_v of_o a_o few_o woman_n yet_o this_o have_v be_v but_o to_o enter_v in_o as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o straight_a chink_n but_o now_o whereas_o one_o only_o hear_v attentive_o and_o with_o fruit_n may_v it_o not_o have_v seem_v that_o the_o way_n be_v stop_v before_o christ_n but_o afterward_o there_o sprunge_v a_o noble_a church_n of_o that_o one_o small_a graft_n which_o paul_n set_v out_o with_o many_o excellent_a commendation_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v that_o lydia_n have_v some_o companion_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v because_o she_o do_v far_o excel_v they_o all_o and_o luke_n do_v not_o assign_v that_o for_o the_o cause_n why_o this_o one_o woman_n do_v show_v herself_o apt_a to_o be_v teach_v because_o she_o be_v more_o witty_a than_o the_o rest_n or_o because_o she_o have_v some_o preparation_n of_o herself_o but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n open_v her_o heart_n that_o she_o may_v give_v ear_n and_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o speech_n of_o paul_n he_o have_v of_o late_o commend_v her_o godliness_n and_o yet_o he_o show_v that_o she_o can_v not_o comprehend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n save_v only_o through_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o not_o faith_n alone_o but_o all_o understanding_n and_o knowledge_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v the_o peculiar_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o minister_n do_v no_o good_a by_o teach_v and_o speak_v unless_o the_o inward_a call_n of_o god_n be_v thereunto_o add_v by_o the_o word_n heart_n the_o scripture_n mean_v sometime_o the_o mind_n as_o when_o moses_n say_v god_n have_v not_o give_v thou_o hitherto_o a_o heart_n to_o understand_v so_o likewise_o in_o this_o place_n luke_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o lydia_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o affection_n of_o heart_n to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n but_o that_o her_o mind_n be_v lighten_v that_o she_o may_v understand_v it_o by_o this_o let_v we_o learn_v that_o such_o be_v the_o blockishness_n such_o be_v the_o blindness_n of_o man_n that_o in_o see_v they_o see_v not_o in_o hear_v they_o hear_v not_o until_o such_o time_n as_o god_n do_v give_v they_o new_a eye_n and_o new_a ear_n but_o we_o must_v note_v the_o speech_n that_o the_o heart_n of_o lydia_n be_v open_v that_o she_o may_v give_v ear_n to_o the_o external_a voice_n of_o the_o teacher_n for_o as_o preach_v alone_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o dead_a letter_n so_o we_o must_v beware_v lest_o a_o false_a imagination_n or_o a_o show_n of_o secret_a illumination_n lead_v we_o away_o from_o the_o word_n whereupon_o faith_n depend_v and_o wherein_o it_o rest_v for_o many_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v amplify_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n feign_v to_o themselves_o certain_a inspire_v person_n that_o they_o may_v leave_v no_o use_n of_o the_o external_a word_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o suffer_v any_o such_o divorce_n to_o be_v make_v which_o join_v the_o ministry_n of_o man_n with_o the_o secret_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n unless_o the_o mind_n of_o lydia_n have_v be_v open_v paul_n preach_v shall_v have_v be_v only_o literal_a and_o yet_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o inspire_v she_o with_o bare_a revelation_n only_o but_o he_o give_v she_o the_o reverence_n of_o his_o word_n so_o that_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n which_o may_v otherwise_o have_v be_v utter_v in_o vain_a do_v pierce_v into_o a_o mind_n endue_v with_o heavenly_a light_n therefore_o let_v those_o brainsick_a fellow_n be_v pack_v who_o under_o colour_n of_o the_o spirit_n refuse_v external_a doctrine_n for_o we_o must_v note_v the_o temperature_n or_o moderation_n which_o luke_n set_v down_o here_o that_o we_o can_v have_v or_o obtain_v nothing_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n alone_o without_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v we_o not_o that_o he_o may_v bring_v contempt_n of_o the_o word_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o may_v dip_v into_o our_o mind_n and_o write_v in_o our_o heart_n the_o faith_n thereof_o now_o if_o the_o cause_n be_v demand_v why_o the_o lord_n open_v one_o woman_n heart_n alone_o we_o must_v return_v unto_o that_o principle_n that_o so_o many_o believe_v as_o be_v ordain_v to_o life_n for_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n which_o go_v before_o the_o plain_a and_o manifest_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n in_o lydia_n be_v also_o a_o fruit_n of_o free_a election_n the_o describer_n of_o situation_n of_o place_n say_v that_o thyatira_n be_v a_o city_n of_o lydia_n situate_v upon_o the_o side_n of_o the_o river_n call_v hermus_n and_o that_o it_o be_v sometime_o call_v pelopia_n but_o some_o there_o be_v who_o attribute_n it_o to_o phrygia_n some_o to_o mysia_n 15_o when_o she_o be_v baptize_v hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o effectual_o god_n wrought_v in_o lydia_n even_o in_o a_o short_a moment_n for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o she_o receive_v and_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n sincere_o and_o give_v he_o her_o name_n before_o paul_n will_v admit_v she_o unto_o baptism_n this_o be_v a_o token_n of_o mere_a readiness_n also_o her_o holy_a zeal_n and_o godliness_n do_v therein_o show_v themselves_o in_o that_o she_o do_v also_o consecrate_v her_o family_n to_o god_n and_o sure_o all_o the_o godly_a aught_o to_o have_v this_o desire_n to_o have_v those_o who_o be_v under_o they_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n for_o he_o be_v unworthy_a to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v a_o ruler_n over_o other_o whosoever_o be_v desirous_a to_o reign_v and_o rule_v in_o his_o own_o house_n over_o his_o wife_n child_n servant_n and_o maid_n and_o will_v cause_v they_o to_o give_v no_o place_n to_o christ_n therefore_o let_v every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a study_n to_o govern_v and_o order_v his_o house_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o image_n of_o the_o church_n i_o grant_v that_o lydia_n have_v not_o in_o her_o hand_n the_o heart_n of_o all_o those_o
they_o be_v desirous_a to_o learn_v that_o they_o may_v be_v better_o instruct_v at_o home_n thereby_o do_v also_o appear_v the_o lively_a heat_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o do_v always_o continue_v unmoveable_a that_o no_o man_n do_v true_o believe_v in_o christ_n save_v only_o he_o which_o do_v give_v over_o himself_o to_o he_o and_o do_v free_o and_o willing_o fight_v under_o his_o banner_n of_o religious_a grecian_n a_o multitude_n because_o these_o have_v learn_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o godliness_n they_o be_v near_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n than_o other_o who_o have_v always_o lay_v in_o the_o filth_n of_o superstition_n notwithstanding_o the_o question_n be_v how_o the_o grecian_n come_v by_o religion_n who_o be_v bewitch_v with_o wicked_a error_n and_o dote_n be_v without_o god_n 2.12_o ephes_n 2.12_o as_o paul_n teach_v but_o we_o must_v know_v that_o whither_o soever_o the_o jew_n be_v exile_v there_o go_v with_o they_o some_o seed_n of_o godliness_n and_o there_o be_v some_o smell_n of_o pure_a doctrine_n spread_v abroad_o for_o their_o miserable_a scatter_v abroad_o be_v so_o turn_v unto_o a_o contrary_a end_n by_o the_o wonderful_a counsel_n of_o god_n that_o it_o do_v gather_v those_o unto_o the_o true_a faith_n who_o do_v wander_v in_o error_n and_o though_o religion_n be_v also_o corrupt_a among_o they_o with_o many_o wicked_a invention_n yet_o because_o most_o of_o the_o gentile_n be_v weary_a of_o their_o madness_n they_o be_v by_o this_o short_a sum_n entice_v unto_o judaisme_n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o safe_a than_o the_o worship_n of_o one_o and_o the_o true_a god_n therefore_o by_o religious_a grecian_n understande_v those_o who_o have_v some_o taste_n of_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a worship_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o any_o long_o give_v to_o gross_a idolatry_n though_o as_o i_o have_v say_v it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o light_n and_o obscure_a taste_n which_o be_v far_o from_o true_a instruction_n wherefore_o luke_n do_v unproper_o give_v they_o such_o a_o honourable_a title_n but_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v sometime_o vouchsafe_v some_o rude_a beginning_n and_o first_o exercise_n of_o faith_n or_o the_o only_a preparation_n the_o name_n of_o faith_n so_o they_o be_v call_v in_o this_o place_n religious_a who_o have_v take_v their_o leave_n of_o idol_n have_v begin_v to_o acknowledge_v one_o god_n and_o though_o that_o confuse_a or_o obscure_a persuasion_n do_v not_o deserve_v of_o itself_o to_o be_v count_v religion_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v a_o step_n whereby_o we_o come_v near_o unto_o god_n it_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o consequent_a as_o they_o call_v it_o or_o of_o that_o which_o follow_v yea_o the_o blind_a and_o superstitious_a fear_n of_o god_n be_v sometime_o call_v religion_n not_o because_o it_o be_v so_o in_o deed_n but_o unproper_o to_o note_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o mean_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o gross_a and_o epicurish_a contempt_n nevertheless_o let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o sound_n doctrine_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o godliness_n so_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o religion_n without_o the_o true_a light_n of_o understanding_n 5_o and_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n be_v move_v with_o envy_n and_o take_v to_o they_o certain_a vacabond_n froward_a fellow_n and_o have_v assemble_v the_o multitude_n they_o make_v a_o tumult_n in_o the_o city_n and_o beset_a the_o house_n of_o jason_n they_o seek_v to_o bring_v they_o out_o unto_o the_o people_n 6_o and_o when_o they_o have_v not_o find_v they_o the_o draw_v jason_n and_o certain_a brethren_n unto_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o city_n cry_v those_o who_o have_v trouble_v the_o whole_a world_n be_v come_v hither_o also_o 7_o who_o jason_n have_v receive_v privy_o and_o all_o these_o do_v contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o caesar_n say_v that_o there_o be_v another_o king_n one_o jesus_n 8_o and_o they_o trouble_v the_o multitude_n and_o the_o magistrate_n of_o the_o city_n when_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n 9_o and_o when_o they_o have_v receive_v sufficient_a assurance_n of_o jason_n and_o the_o rest_n they_o let_v they_o go_v 10_o and_o forthwith_o the_o brethren_n send_v forth_o paul_n &_o silas_n by_o night_n unto_o berrhe●_n who_o when_o they_o be_v come_v they_o go_v into_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n 5_o and_o be_v move_v with_o envy_n we_o see_v how_o paul_n can_v no_o where_n erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o chtiste_n without_o some_o conflict_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o fruit_n of_o doctrine_n appear_v there_o arise_v persecution_n therewithal_o but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v to_o war_n against_o satan_n and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o world_n he_o be_v not_o only_o harden_v against_o all_o assault_n but_o he_o be_v more_o encourage_v more_o courageous_o to_o proceed_v therefore_o all_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v content_a with_o this_o one_o example_n of_o he_o if_o they_o see_v that_o their_o labour_n do_v yield_v some_o fruit_n they_o must_v recompense_v all_o manner_n persecution_n with_o this_o reward_n and_o this_o place_n teach_v that_o the_o zeal_n wherewith_o the_o unbeliever_n be_v carry_v headlong_o and_o set_v on_o fire_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o furious_a force_n because_o it_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o the_o prudence_n of_o the_o spirit_n neither_o yet_o with_o righteousness_n or_o equity_n and_o though_o they_o do_v always_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o god_n for_o a_o excuse_n of_o their_o disorder_a zeal_n yet_o this_o history_n do_v plain_o declare_v that_o mere_a hypocrisy_n do_v reign_v inward_o and_o that_o all_o corner_n of_o their_o heart_n be_v stuff_v with_o poison_a malice_n these_o enemy_n of_o paul_n do_v boast_v that_o they_o be_v defender_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o do_v hate_n paul_n and_o contend_v with_o he_o only_o in_o defence_n thereof_o why_o do_v they_o then_o arm_v the_o wicked_a and_o conspire_v together_o with_o they_o to_o raise_v tumult_n why_o then_o do_v they_o also_o before_o a_o profane_a magistrate_n bring_v the_o gospel_n in_o that_o contempt_n which_o may_v have_v redound_v to_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o law_n such_o sedition_n do_v plain_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v move_v with_o nothing_o less_o than_o with_o desire_n to_o please_v god_n to_o be_v thus_o hot_a against_o paul_n for_o to_o what_o end_n do_v they_o beset_v jasons_n house_n and_o strive_v disorderlie_a to_o pluck_v out_o paul_n thence_o save_v only_o that_o they_o may_v set_v he_o before_o the_o people_n to_o be_v stone_v therefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o wicked_a zeal_n which_o be_v hot_a in_o superstitious_a man_n be_v always_o infect_v with_o hypocrisy_n and_o malice_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o it_o break_v out_o into_o cruelty_n without_o keep_v any_o measure_n take_v to_o they_o certain_a vacabound_v the_o greek_a word_n which_o luke_n use_v do_v signify_v sluggard_n and_o man_n whereof_o there_o ought_v not_o account_v to_o be_v make_v who_o have_v nothing_o wherewith_o they_o can_v keep_v themselves_o occupy_v at_o home_n do_v run_v up_o and_o down_o idle_a or_o bold_a fellow_n and_o hungry_a who_o be_v ready_a to_o forswear_v themselves_o to_o raise_v tumult_n and_o to_o be_v at_o one_o end_n of_o every_o wicked_a fact_n whereby_o it_o do_v likewise_o appear_v that_o their_o own_o conscience_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o do_v amiss_o see_v they_o get_v wicked_a man_n to_o take_v their_o part_n and_o to_o give_v they_o their_o consent_n for_o see_v the_o magistrate_n do_v favour_v they_o what_o do_v move_v they_o to_o raise_v that_o tempest_n save_v only_o because_o they_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o have_v any_o success_n unless_o matter_n shall_v be_v out_o of_o order_n and_o all_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o uproar_n and_o luke_n describe_v how_o such_o fan_n do_v raise_v sedition_n to_o wit_n they_o gather_v the_o people_n together_o in_o troop_n and_o spread_v abroad_o their_o poison_n here_o &_o there_o until_o they_o be_v strong_a enough_o to_o make_v a_o assault_n which_o policy_n be_v too_o common_a among_o seditious_a fellow_n as_o those_o city_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o this_o mischief_n do_v fulwel_n know_v 6_o those_o man_n who_o have_v trouble_v the_o whole_a world_n this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o have_v those_o uproar_n which_o satan_n raise_v impute_v to_o it_o this_o be_v also_o the_o maliciousness_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n to_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o tumult_n upon_o holy_a and_o modest_a teacher_n which_o they_o themselves_o procure_v assure_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o preach_v to_o this_o end_n that_o it_o may_v set_v man_n together_o by_o the_o care_n but_o rather_o that_o it_o may_v keep_v
they_o go_v about_o to_o make_v of_o none_o effect_n shall_v so_o gird_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v at_o length_n perceive_v that_o they_o have_v strive_v in_o vain_a with_o their_o snare_n and_o no_o marvel_v if_o this_o point_n of_o paul_n his_o doctrine_n be_v deride_v at_o athens_n for_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n hide_v from_o man_n mind_n whereon_o the_o chief_a philosopher_n do_v never_o think_v neither_o can_v we_o otherwise_o comprehend_v it_o then_o when_o we_o lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n unto_o the_o infinite_a power_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o paul_n his_o sermon_n be_v not_o altogether_o without_o fruit_n because_o there_o be_v some_o of_o the_o hearer_n which_o be_v desirous_a to_o profit_v and_o go_v forward_o for_o when_o they_o say_v that_o they_o will_v hear_v he_o again_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o thorough_o persuade_v yet_o have_v they_o some_o taste_n which_o do_v provoke_v they_o to_o be_v desirous_a to_o profit_v sure_o this_o desire_n be_v contrary_a to_o loathsomeness_n 34_o among_o who_o be_v also_o dionysius_n see_v that_o luke_n do_v name_n one_o man_n and_o one_o woman_n only_o it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n of_o those_o which_o believe_v at_o the_o first_o for_o those_o other_o of_o who_o he_o make_v mention_n remain_v indifferent_a because_o they_o do_v neither_o whole_o despise_v paul_n his_o doctrine_n neither_o be_v they_o so_o thorough_o touch_v that_o they_o join_v themselves_o unto_o he_o that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o scholar_n luke_n make_v mention_n of_o dionysius_n above_o the_o rest_n because_o he_o be_v in_o no_o small_a authority_n among_o his_o citizen_n therefore_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o damaris_n be_v also_o a_o woman_n of_o some_o renown_n furthermore_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a in_o that_o the_o papi_v make_v of_o a_o judge_n a_o astrologer_n but_o this_o be_v to_o be_v impute_v partly_o to_o their_o ignorance_n partly_o to_o their_o boldness_n who_o see_v they_o know_v not_o what_o areopagus_n or_o mars_n street_n mean_v take_v to_o themselves_o liberty_n to_o feign_v whatsoever_o they_o will_v and_o their_o rudeness_n be_v too_o gross_a who_o ascribe_v the_o book_n of_o the_o heavenly_a and_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n and_o of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o this_o dionysius_n for_o the_o heavenly_a hierarchy_n be_v stuff_v not_o only_o with_o many_o doltish_a and_o moonkish_a trifle_n but_o also_o with_o many_o absurd_a invention_n and_o wicked_a speculation_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n do_v themselves_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v make_v many_o year_n after_o when_o as_o the_o purity_n of_o christianity_n be_v corrupt_v with_o a_o huge_a heap_n of_o ceremony_n as_o for_o the_o book_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n though_o it_o have_v in_o it_o some_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o altogether_o to_o be_v despise_v yet_o it_o do_v rather_o breath_n out_o subtlety_n then_o sound_o godliness_n chap._n xviii_o 1_o after_o this_o paul_n depart_v from_o athens_n and_o come_v to_o corinthus_n 2_o and_o have_v get_v a_o certain_a jew_n call_v aquila_n bear_v in_o pontus_n who_o come_v late_o from_o italy_n and_o priscilla_n his_o wife_n because_o claudius_n have_v command_v all_o jew_n to_o depart_v from_o rome_n he_o come_v unto_o they_o 3_o and_o because_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o craft_n he_o abide_v with_o they_o and_o wrought_v and_o they_o be_v tent_n maker_n 4_o and_o he_o dispute_v in_o the_o synagogue_n every_o sabbath_n day_n and_o persuade_v both_o jew_n and_o greek_n 5_o and_o when_o silas_n and_o timotheus_n be_v come_v from_o macedonia_n paul_n be_v force_v in_o the_o spirit_n testify_v to_o the_o jew_n that_o jesus_n be_v christ._n 1_o this_o history_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v remember_v even_o for_o this_o one_o cause_n because_o it_o contain_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinthus_n which_o as_o it_o be_v famous_a for_o good_a cause_n both_o because_o of_o the_o multitude_n of_o man_n &_o also_o because_o of_o the_o excellent_a gift_n bestow_v upon_o they_o so_o there_o be_v in_o it_o gross_a and_o shameful_a vice_n furthermore_o luke_n show_v in_o this_o place_n with_o what_o great_a labour_n and_o how_o hardly_o paul_n do_v win_v the_o same_o to_o christ_n it_o be_v well_o know_v what_o a_o rich_a city_n corinthus_n be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o noble_a mart_n how_o populous_a how_o great_o give_v to_o pleasure_n and_o the_o old_a proverb_n do_v testify_v that_o it_o be_v sumptuous_a and_o full_a of_o riot_n all_o man_n can_v go_v to_o corinthus_n when_o paul_n enter_v the_o same_o what_o hope_v i_o pray_v you_o can_v he_o conceive_v he_o be_v a_o simple_a man_n unknown_a have_v no_o eloquence_n or_o pomp_n show_v no_o wealth_n or_o power_n in_o that_o that_o huge_a gulf_n do_v not_o swallow_v up_o his_o confidence_n and_o desire_n which_o he_o have_v to_o spread_v abroad_o the_o gospel_n by_o this_o we_o gather_v that_o he_o be_v furnish_v with_o wonderful_a power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o also_o that_o god_n wrought_v by_o his_o hand_n after_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n and_o not_o after_o any_o humane_a manner_n wherefore_o he_o boast_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o corinthian_n be_v the_o seal_n of_o his_o apostleship_n for_o they_o be_v twice_o blind_a 9.2_o 1._o cor._n 9.2_o who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v more_o plain_o appear_v in_o such_o a_o simple_a &_o base_a kind_n of_o deal_v and_o he_o himself_o show_v no_o small_a token_n of_o invincible_a constancy_n when_o be_v vex_v with_o the_o mock_n of_o all_o man_n as_o the_o proud_a do_v contemn_v he_o he_o do_v notwithstanding_o stay_v himself_o upon_o god_n help_v alone_o but_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o labour_n to_o note_v all_o the_o circumstance_n as_o luke_n set_v down_o the_o same_o in_o order_n 2_o a_o jew_n call_v aquila_n this_o be_v no_o small_a trial_n in_o that_o paul_n find_v none_o at_o corinthus_n to_o lodge_v he_o save_v aquila_n who_o have_v be_v twice_o exile_v for_o be_v bear_v in_o pontus_n he_o forsake_v his_o country_n and_o sail_v over_o the_o sea_n that_o he_o may_v dwell_v at_o rome_n he_o be_v compel_v to_o depart_v thence_o again_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o claudius_n caesar_n though_o the_o commodiousnes_n of_o the_o city_n be_v such_o the_o plenty_n so_o great_a the_o situation_n so_o pleasant_a and_o there_o be_v also_o so_o many_o jew_n there_o yet_o paul_n find_v no_o more_o fit_a host_n than_o a_o man_n that_o have_v be_v banish_v out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n and_o also_o out_o of_o another_o soil_n if_o we_o compare_v the_o great_a fruit_n which_o ensue_v immediate_o upon_o his_o preach_n with_o such_o a_o base_a entrance_n the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v plain_o appear_v also_o we_o may_v see_v how_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o singular_a counsel_n turn_v those_o thing_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a which_o seem_v contrary_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o unhappy_a nothing_o be_v more_o miserable_a than_o exile_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o it_o be_v far_o better_a for_o aquila_n to_o be_v paul_n his_o companion_n than_o to_o be_v in_o the_o high_a office_n either_o at_o rome_n or_o in_o his_o country_n therefore_o this_o happy_a calamity_n of_o aquila_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v often_o better_a provide_v for_o we_o when_o he_o do_v sharp_o punish_v we_o than_o if_o he_o shall_v most_o gentle_o entreat_v we_o and_o when_o he_o toss_v we_o to_o and_o fro_o in_o most_o extreme_a exile_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o unto_o the_o heavenly_a rest_n all_o jew_n to_o depart_v from_o rome_n the_o estate_n of_o that_o nation_n be_v then_o very_o miserable_a so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o they_o do_v not_o almost_o all_o depart_v from_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v a_o great_a wonder_n that_o the_o religion_n wherein_o they_o have_v be_v bring_v up_o prevail_v against_o caesar_n tyranny_n and_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n do_v arise_v few_o be_v turn_v unto_o he_o notwithstanding_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n suffer_v they_o to_o pass_v through_o many_o trouble_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o willing_o yea_o the_o more_o greedy_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o redemption_n offer_v they_o but_o the_o more_o part_n become_v dull_a in_o their_o misery_n few_o do_v submit_v themselves_o to_o be_v teach_v when_o the_o lord_n do_v punish_v they_o as_o do_v aquila_n and_o priscilla_n yet_o if_o suetonius_n say_v the_o truth_n they_o be_v expel_v through_o hatred_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o
return_v to_o you_o again_o godwilling_a and_o he_o loose_v from_o ephesus_n 22_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v down_o to_o cesaria_n and_o be_v go_v up_o and_o have_v salute_v the_o church_n he_o come_v down_o to_o antioch_n 23_o and_o when_o he_o have_v tarry_v there_o some_o time_n he_o depart_v walk_v through_o the_o country_n of_o galacia_n and_o phrygia_n in_o order_n strengthen_v all_o the_o disciple_n 18_o and_o when_o he_o have_v tarry_v there_o many_o day_n paul_n his_o constancy_n appear_v in_o this_o in_o that_o he_o be_v not_o drive_v away_o with_o fear_n lest_o he_o shall_v trouble_v the_o disciple_n who_o be_v as_o yet_o ignorant_a &_o weak_a with_o his_o sudden_a and_o untimely_a departure_n we_o read_v in_o many_o other_o place_n that_o when_o persecution_n be_v raise_v against_o he_o elsewhere_o he_o flee_v forthwith_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n then_o that_o he_o stay_v at_o corinthus_n to_o wit_n when_o he_o see_v that_o the_o enemy_n be_v provoke_v with_o his_o presence_n to_o rage_n against_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o faithful_a shall_v have_v peace_n and_o rest_n by_o his_o departure_n but_o now_o when_o he_o see_v their_o malice_n bridle_v so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o hurt_v the_o flock_n of_o god_n he_o have_v rather_o sting_v and_o nettle_n they_o then_o by_o depart_v to_o minister_v unto_o they_o any_o new_a occasion_n of_o rage_n furthermore_o this_o be_v the_o three_o journey_n which_o paul_n take_v to_o jerusalem_n for_o go_v from_o damascus_n he_o go_v once_o up_o that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o he_o be_v send_v the_o second_o time_n with_o barnabas_n that_o he_o may_v handle_v and_o end_v the_o controversy_n about_o ceremony_n but_o luke_n do_v not_o set_v down_o for_o what_o cause_n he_o now_o take_v such_o a_o long_a and_o laborous_a journey_n determine_v with_o all_o speed_n to_o return_v when_o he_o have_v shear_v his_o head_n it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o aquila_n or_o of_o paul_n neither_o skill_v it_o much_o though_o i_o interpret_v it_o willing_o of_o paul_n because_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o a_o likely_a thing_n that_o he_o do_v this_o for_o because_o of_o the_o jew_n unto_o who_o he_o be_v about_o to_o come_v assure_o i_o think_v this_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o all_o man_n grant_v that_o he_o make_v not_o any_o ceremonial_a vow_n for_o his_o own_o cause_n only_o that_o he_o may_v do_v some_o worship_n to_o god_n he_o know_v that_o that_o be_v to_o continue_v only_o for_o a_o time_n which_o god_n command_v under_o the_o law_n to_o the_o old_a people_n and_o we_o know_v how_o diligent_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n consist_v not_o in_o these_o external_a element_n and_o how_o straight_o he_o urge_v the_o abrogate_a thereof_o it_o have_v be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n for_o he_o to_o bind_v his_o own_o conscience_n with_o that_o religion_n from_o which_o he_o have_v loose_v all_o other_o man_n therefore_o he_o do_v shear_v his_o head_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n save_v only_o that_o he_o may_v apply_v himself_o to_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v as_o yet_o ignorant_a &_o not_o thorough_o teach_v as_o he_o do_v testify_v that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o voluntary_a observe_v of_o the_o law_n from_o which_o he_o be_v free_v that_o he_o may_v gain_v those_o who_o be_v under_o the_o law_n if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o make_v semblance_n of_o a_o vow_n which_o he_o have_v not_o make_v from_o his_o hart_n we_o may_v easy_o answer_v 9.20_o 1._o cor._n 9.20_o that_o as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o purifi_v he_o do_v not_o dissemble_v and_o that_o he_o use_v the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v as_o yet_o free_a not_o as_o if_o god_n do_v require_v such_o worship_n but_o that_o he_o may_v somewhat_o bear_v with_o the_o ignorant_a therefore_o the_o papist_n be_v ridiculous_a when_o they_o set_v from_o hence_o a_o example_n of_o make_v vow_n paul_n be_v move_v with_o no_o religion_n to_o make_v his_o vow_n but_o these_o man_n place_v a_o feign_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o vow_n respect_n of_o time_n enforce_v paul_n to_o keep_v the_o rite_n of_o the_o law_n these_o man_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o entangle_v in_o superstition_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v set_v free_a long_o ago_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o bring_v in_o use_n again_o old_a ceremony_n use_v long_o ago_o and_o another_o to_o tolerate_v the_o same_o be_v as_o yet_o use_v until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o may_v by_o little_a and_o little_o grow_v out_o of_o use_n i_o omit_v that_o the_o papist_n in_o vain_a and_o foolish_o compare_v the_o shave_n of_o their_o priest_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o purify_n which_o god_n have_v allow_v in_o the_o law_n but_o because_o we_o need_v not_o stand_v any_o long_a to_o refute_v they_o let_v this_o one_o thing_n suffice_v we_o that_o paul_n bind_v himself_o with_o a_o vow_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v those_o which_o be_v weak_a to_o christ_n at_o least_o that_o he_o may_v not_o offend_v they_o which_o vow_v he_o know_v be_v of_o no_o importance_n before_o god_n 19_o enter_v into_o the_o synagogue_n in_o that_o he_o shake_v his_o garment_n at_o corinthus_n it_o be_v do_v for_o that_o cause_n as_o this_o place_n teach_v that_o he_o may_v cast_v off_o the_o whole_a nation_n but_o only_o such_o as_o he_o have_v already_o try_v to_o be_v of_o desperate_a obstinacy_n now_o he_o come_v afresh_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n that_o he_o may_v try_v whether_o he_o can_v find_v any_o more_o obedience_n among_o they_o furthermore_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o see_v it_o appear_v by_o luke_n his_o report_n that_o he_o be_v hear_v more_o patient_o in_o this_o synagogue_n then_o in_o any_o other_o place_n &_o also_o that_o he_o be_v request_v to_o tarry_v he_o do_v not_o grant_v their_o request_n hence_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v that_o which_o i_o say_v before_o that_o he_o have_v some_o great_a cause_n to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n in_o haste_n also_o he_o himself_o show_v that_o he_o must_v make_v haste_n say_v i_o must_v keep_v the_o feast_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n at_o jerusalem_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o after_o he_o have_v set_v thing_n in_o good_a order_n there_o he_o depart_v with_o their_o good_a leave_n and_o we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o luke_n his_o word_n that_o they_o do_v admit_v his_o excuse_n lest_o the_o repulse_n shall_v offend_v they_o and_o this_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o when_o better_a hope_n to_o do_v good_a be_v offer_v we_o than_o we_o be_v wont_a to_o have_v we_o be_v draw_v unto_o diverse_a affair_n as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o give_v over_o ourselves_o to_o be_v govern_v at_o his_o pleasure_n the_o feast_n that_o which_o i_o say_v of_o late_o touch_v the_o vow_n do_v also_o appertain_v unto_o the_o feast_n day_n for_o paul_n mean_v not_o to_o do_v thereby_o any_o duty_n of_o godliness_n to_o god_n but_o to_o be_v at_o the_o assembly_n wherein_o he_o may_v do_v more_o good_a then_o at_o any_o other_o time_n of_o the_o year_n for_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o do_v sufficient_o testify_v what_o account_n he_o make_v of_o difference_n of_o day_n and_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o make_v no_o promise_n touch_v his_o return_n 4.10_o gal._n 4.10_o with_o out_o use_v this_o exception_n if_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n we_o do_v all_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stir_v one_o finger_n without_o his_o direction_n but_o because_o there_o reign_v in_o man_n so_o great_a arrogancy_n every_o where_o that_o they_o dare_v determine_v any_o thing_n pass_v over_o god_n not_o only_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o also_o for_o many_o year_n we_o must_v oftentimes_o think_v upon_o this_o reverence_n and_o sobriety_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o make_v our_o counsel_n subject_a to_o the_o will_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n lest_o if_o we_o delyberate_v and_o take_v counsel_n as_o those_o use_n to_o do_v who_o think_v that_o they_o have_v fortune_n at_o their_o commandment_n we_o be_v just_o punish_v for_o our_o rashness_n and_o though_o there_o be_v not_o so_o great_a religion_n in_o word_n but_o that_o we_o may_v at_o our_o pleasure_n say_v that_o we_o will_v do_v this_o or_o that_o yet_o be_v it_o good_a to_o accustom_v ourselves_o to_o use_v certain_a form_n in_o our_o speech_n that_o they_o may_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o god_n do_v direct_v all_o our_o do_n 22_o when_o he_o come_v down_o to_o caesarea_n though_o luke_n say_v in_o a_o word_n that_o paul_n salute_v
the_o papist_n stand_v at_o this_o day_n they_o boast_v with_o full_a mouth_n that_o they_o be_v patron_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n &_o of_o the_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n but_o when_o they_o have_v speak_v thus_o touch_v their_o zeal_n in_o the_o very_a handle_n of_o the_o cause_n they_o breathe_v out_o with_o wide_a open_a throat_n the_o smell_n of_o their_o kitchen_n but_o if_o we_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o handle_v the_o cause_n of_o godliness_n pure_o and_o in_o earnest_n let_v we_o forget_v our_o commodity_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n may_v have_v the_o chief_a place_n for_o the_o show_n of_o profit_n do_v so_o tie_v all_o our_o sense_n with_o enticement_n that_o though_o we_o wander_v through_o all_o manner_n wickedness_n yet_o do_v we_o flatter_v ourselves_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v determine_v to_o provide_v for_o our_o own_o commodity_n who_o all_o asia_n and_o the_o world_n do_v worship_n it_o seem_v to_o demetrius_n a_o unmeet_a thing_n that_o diana_n her_o majesty_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o naught_o which_o all_o the_o world_n do_v reverence_n and_o worship_n and_o this_o be_v a_o common_a start_a hole_n for_o all_o superstitious_a person_n to_o pretend_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o multitude_n but_o true_a religion_n require_v a_o more_o steadfast_a stay_n then_o in_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o man_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o at_o this_o day_n do_v more_o keep_v back_o the_o simple_a and_o unskilful_a then_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o cast_v from_o they_o such_o ancient_a error_n as_o be_v common_o receive_v every_o where_n because_o they_o feign_v and_o imagine_v that_o that_o which_o please_v many_o though_o foolish_o and_o rash_o be_v to_o be_v count_v lawful_a for_o which_o cause_n they_o be_v not_o afraid_a bold_o to_o set_v the_o very_a name_n of_o custom_n against_o god_n himself_o but_o the_o lord_n do_v prescribe_v to_o we_o another_o manner_n of_o rule_n to_o wit_n that_o be_v content_a with_o his_o authority_n alone_o we_o do_v not_o pass_v either_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n no●_n for_o our_o own_o commodity_n nor_o for_o the_o custom_n of_o many_o nation_n 29_o and_o all_o the_o city_n be_v full_a of_o confusion_n and_o they_o rush_v into_o the_o common_a place_n with_o one_o consent_n have_v catch_v gaius_n and_o aristarchus_n man_n of_o macedonia_n paul_n his_o companion_n 30_o and_o when_o paul_n will_v have_v enter_v in_o unto_o the_o people_n the_o disciple_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o 31_o and_o certain_a also_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o asia_n which_o be_v his_o friend_n send_v unto_o he_o request_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o common_a place_n 32_o some_o therefore_o cry_v one_o thing_n and_o some_o another_o for_o the_o assembly_n be_v out_o of_o order_n and_o the_o more_o part_n know_v not_o for_o what_o cause_n they_o come_v together_o 33_o and_o some_o of_o the_o company_n draw_v forth_o alexander_n the_o jew_n thrust_v he_o forward_o and_o when_o alexander_n have_v require_v silence_n with_o the_o hand_n he_o will_v have_v excuse_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o people_n 34_o who_o when_o they_o know_v to_o be_v a_o jew_n there_o arise_v a_o shout_n of_o all_o man_n almost_o for_o the_o space_n of_o two_o hour_n cry_v great_a be_v diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n 29_o luke_n set_v down_o in_o this_o place_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o people_n as_o if_o it_o be_v depaint_v in_o a_o table_n like_a as_o if_o a_o thousand_o house_n shall_v be_v set_v on_o fire_n at_o a_o sudden_a so_o all_o the_o city_n be_v on_o a_o uproar_n in_o one_o moment_n and_o when_o such_o a_o tempest_n be_v once_o raise_v it_o be_v not_o easy_o stay_v and_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n can_v avoid_v this_o mischief_n they_o must_v be_v arm_v with_o invincible_a constancy_n that_o they_o may_v bold_o suffer_v the_o tumult_n raise_v among_o the_o people_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v trouble_v as_o with_o some_o new_a and_o strange_a matter_n when_o they_o see_v that_o the_o people_n be_v unquiet_a so_o paul_n himself_o do_v elsewhere_o triumph_v that_o he_o go_v valiant_o through_o the_o midst_n of_o sedition_n 6.5_o 2._o cor._n 6.5_o nevertheless_o the_o lord_n do_v uphold_v the_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n with_o a_o excellent_a comfort_n when_o as_o they_o be_v toss_v amid_o diverse_a storm_n and_o garboil_n and_o with_o excellent_a boldness_n do_v he_o establish_v they_o when_o he_o do_v testify_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o helm_n of_o his_o church_n and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o governor_n and_o moderator_n of_o all_o tumult_n and_o storm_n so_o that_o he_o can_v stay_v the_o same_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o therefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o we_o must_v sail_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o tempestuous_a sea_n yet_o that_o we_o must_v suffer_v this_o infamy_n as_o if_o we_o ourselves_o be_v the_o procurer_n of_o trouble_n neither_o may_v any_o thing_n lead_v we_o away_o from_o the_o right_a course_n of_o our_o duty_n so_o that_o in_o sail_v we_o shall_v be_v sore_o trouble_v yet_o will_v not_o the_o lord_n suffer_v we_o to_o suffer_v shipwreck_n furthermore_o we_o see_v that_o though_o sedition_n be_v confuse_v yet_o do_v the_o people_n always_o take_v the_o worse_a part_n as_o the_o man_n of_o ephesus_n do_v now_o catch_v gaius_n and_o aristarchus_n and_o they_o drive_v back_o alexander_n with_o their_o furious_a outcry_n whence_o come_v this_o save_v only_o because_o satan_n do_v reign_v in_o their_o heart_n so_o that_o they_o rather_o favour_v a_o evil_a cause_n there_o be_v also_o another_o reason_n because_o a_o prejudice_n conceive_v upon_o a_o false_a report_n do_v possess_v their_o mind_n so_o that_o they_o can_v abide_v to_o sift_v the_o cause_n any_o far_o 30_o and_o when_o paul_n will_v we_o may_v see_v that_o paul_n his_o constancy_n be_v couple_v with_o modesty_n when_o as_o he_o may_v well_o have_v keep_v himself_o out_o of_o sight_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n be_v he_o prepare_v to_o put_v himself_o in_o hazard_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o follow_v their_o counsel_n who_o know_v the_o state_n of_o matter_n better_o than_o he_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v keep_v back_o that_o which_o he_o determine_v to_o do_v can_v not_o have_v be_v impute_v to_o rashness_n there_o be_v no_o sedition_n raise_v through_o his_o fault_n why_o …_o de_fw-fr not_o he_o venture_v his_o life_n especial_o see_v that_o he_o do_v not_o despair_v of_o better_a success_n but_o when_o the_o brethren_n and_o such_o friend_n as_o be_v more_o skilful_a dissuade_v he_o his_o modesty_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v commend_v in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o stand_v stout_o in_o his_o purpose_n 33_o they_o draw_v out_o alexander_n it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o send_v forth_o this_o alexander_n to_o plead_v the_o common_a cause_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o that_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o bring_v he_o before_o the_o people_n that_o he_o may_v be_v murder_v nevertheless_o the_o name_n jew_n make_v he_o to_o be_v so_o hate_v that_o they_o do_v outrageous_o refuse_v whatsoever_o he_o be_v about_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o matter_n and_o cause_n yea_o he_o do_v hardly_o escape_v with_o his_o life_n in_o such_o a_o uproar_n moreover_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o this_o be_v that_o alexander_n of_o who_o paul_n make_v mention_v elsewhere_o 4.14_o 1._o tim._n 1.20_o &_o 2._o tim._n 4.14_o yet_o the_o conjecture_n seem_v to_o i_o allowable_a but_o and_o if_o we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v he_o l●t_v we_o learn_v by_o this_o fearful_a example_n to_o walk_v circumspect_o lest_o satan_n carry_v we_o away_o into_o like_o fall_v away_o for_o we_o see_v that_o he_o who_o be_v at_o the_o point_n to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n become_v a_o treacherous_a and_o wicked_a revolt_n 34_o great_a be_v diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n this_o be_v a_o clamorous_a confession_n but_o without_o any_o soundness_n neither_o do_v it_o proceed_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o heart_n for_o whence_o come_v that_o great_a divinity_n of_o diana_n whereof_o they_o speak_v save_v only_o because_o like_v mad_a man_n they_o furious_o defend_v that_o error_n which_o they_o have_v once_o receive_v it_o fare_v otherwise_o with_o true_a godliness_n that_o we_o believe_v with_o the_o heart_n unto_o righteousness_n and_o then_o do_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o mouth_n follow_v to_o salvation_n therein_o do_v the_o distemperature_n and_o mad_a stubbernenesse_n of_o all_o mad_a man_n and_o brainesicke_a fool_n differ_v from_o the_o constancy_n and_o zeal_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o our_o sluggishness_n be_v shameful_a if_o we_o be_v not_o as_o ready_a and_o stout_a in_o the_o
other_o unto_o the_o like_a rebellion_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o circumcise_v it_o be_v so_o indeed_o for_o paul_n teach_v that_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n for_o these_o sentence_n be_v general_a with_o he_o 7.19_o ●_o cor._n 7.19_o circumcision_n be_v nothing_o again_o we_o be_v circumcise_v by_o baptism_n in_o christ_n 2.11.16_o col._n 2.11.16_o not_o with_o circumcision_n make_v with_o hand_n again_o let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o drink_v or_o in_o choice_n of_o feast_n which_o be_v shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v 10.25_o ●_o cor._n 10.25_o but_o the_o body_n be_v in_o christ_n again_o whatsoever_o come_v into_o the_o shambles_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v set_v before_o you_o that_o eat_v ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n again_o be_v not_o enwrap_v again_o in_o the_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n see_v that_o he_o speak_v thus_o every_o where_n without_o exception_n 5.1_o gal._n 5.1_o he_o free_v the_o jew_n from_o the_o necessity_n of_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o lest_o i_o stand_v too_o long_o upon_o this_o one_o place_n shall_v be_v sufficient_a where_o he_o compare_v the_o law_n to_o a_o tutor_n under_o which_o the_o old_a church_n be_v as_o in_o the_o childhood_n thereof_o but_o now_o know_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v grow_v up_o that_o it_o may_v be_v free_a from_o ceremony_n in_o that_o place_n he_o speak_v undoutedlie_o both_o of_o the_o jew_n &_o gentile_n also_o when_o he_o say_v 2.14_o gal._n 2.14_o that_o the_o handwriting_n of_o the_o law_n which_o do_v consist_v in_o decree_n be_v blot_v out_o and_o nail_v to_o the_o cross_n by_o christ_n he_o set_v free_a the_o jew_n as_o well_o as_o the_o gentile_n from_o the_o ceremony_n which_o he_o call_v in_o that_o place_n decree_n but_o see_v that_o he_o do_v not_o precise_o reject_v ceremony_n in_o teach_v that_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n do_v make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o observe_v thereof_o that_o be_v no_o revolt_n as_o the_o envious_a jew_n think_v it_o to_o be_v neither_o be_v the_o elder_n ignorant_a of_o paul_n his_o liberty_n therefore_o see_v they_o understand_v the_o matter_n very_o well_o their_o meaning_n be_v to_o have_v this_o alone_o make_v know_v to_o the_o rude_a and_o unskilful_a that_o paul_n mean_v nothing_o less_o then_o to_o persuade_v the_o jew_n to_o contemn_v the_o law_n therefore_o they_o behold_v not_o the_o bare_a matter_n but_o know_v what_o the_o common_a sort_n think_v of_o paul_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o report_n which_o go_v about_o concern_v he_o they_o seek_v to_o cure_v the_o same_o though_o i_o wot_v not_o whether_o this_o be_v more_o importunate_a than_o equal_a which_o they_o require_v at_o paul_n his_o hand_n and_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o preposterous_a the_o cruelty_n of_o man_n be_v in_o receive_v false_a report_n and_o how_o fast_o a_o false_a opinion_n once_o rash_o receive_v do_v stick_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o james_n and_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n do_v endeavour_n to_o maintain_v &_o defend_v paul_n his_o good_a report_n &_o to_o put_v away_o those_o lie_n which_o do_v hurt_v his_o estimation_n yet_o let_v they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v they_o will_v speak_v evil_a of_o paul_n unless_o peradventure_o they_o be_v too_o slack_a in_o the_o beginning_n that_o they_o may_v gratify_v their_o country_n man_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o their_o own_o man_n afterward_o 22_o the_o multitude_n must_v needs_o come_v together_o the_o verb_n be_v a_o verb_n neuter_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v the_o multitude_n must_v of_o necessity_n come_v together_o for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n that_o a_o apostle_n of_o such_o rare_a report_n shall_v not_o come_v before_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o if_o he_o have_v eschew_v the_o light_n and_o sight_n of_o people_n the_o sinister_a suspicion_n may_v have_v be_v increase_v nevertheless_o we_o see_v how_o modest_o the_o elder_n behave_v themselves_o in_o nourish_a concord_n when_o as_o they_o prevent_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o people_n in_o time_n save_v that_o they_o bear_v too_o much_o peradventure_o with_o their_o infirmity_n in_o require_v a_o vow_n of_o paul_n but_o this_o moderation_n must_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o pastor_n be_v in_o great_a authority_n &_o yet_o that_o they_o rule_v not_o proud_o as_o lord_n neither_o despice_fw-la the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n for_o the_o distinction_n of_o order_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o peace_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v any_o cause_n of_o dissension_n 23_o do_v that_o which_o we_o say_v to_o thou_o the_o elder_n seem_v as_o i_o say_v even_o now_o to_o be_v fall_v unto_o a_o foolish_a pamper_n through_o too_o much_o love_n of_o their_o nation_n but_o the_o manifest_a judgement_n of_o that_o thing_n depend_v upon_o the_o circumstance_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o at_o this_o day_n yet_o they_o know_v they_o well_o the_o whole_a body_n almost_o do_v consist_v upon_o jew_n so_o that_o they_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v the_o offend_n of_o the_o gentile_n for_o in_o other_o region_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o departure_n because_o every_o man_n be_v wed_v to_o his_o own_o custom_n &_o will_v prescribe_v a_o law_n to_o other_o furthermore_o they_o have_v at_o jerusalem_fw-la many_o thing_n which_o may_v provoke_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n so_o that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a excuse_n if_o they_o do_v more_o slow_o forsake_v they_o and_o though_o their_o zeal_n be_v not_o void_a of_o fault_n yet_o as_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o reform_v it_o so_o it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v at_o a_o sudden_a we_o see_v how_o this_o superstition_n be_v scarce_o in_o long_a time_n pull_v from_o the_o apostle_n &_o because_o new_a disciple_n come_v daily_o unto_o the_o faith_n the_o infirmity_n be_v nourish_v in_o all_o together_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o ignorance_n be_v couple_v with_o obstinacy_n which_o the_o elder_n do_v nevertheless_o tolerate_v lest_o they_o shall_v do_v more_o hurt_n by_o use_v violent_a remedy_n i_o leave_v it_o indifferent_a whether_o they_o do_v pass_v measure_n or_o no._n have_v a_o vow_n upon_o they_o though_o these_o four_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o faithful_a yet_o their_o vow_n be_v superstitious_a whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v much_o trouble_n in_o that_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o only_o harden_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o law_n through_o long_a use_n but_o be_v also_o natural_o malipart_v &_o almost_o intractable_a though_o it_o may_v be_v that_o these_o man_n be_v as_o yet_o but_o novice_n &_o therefore_o their_o faith_n be_v yet_o but_o slender_a &_o scarce_o well_o frame_v wherefore_o the_o doctor_n do_v suffer_v they_o to_o perform_v the_o vow_n which_o they_o have_v unaduised_o make_v as_o touch_v paul_n because_o he_o make_v this_o vow_n not_o move_v thereunto_o by_o his_o own_o conscience_n but_o for_o their_o sake_n with_o who_o error_n he_o do_v bear_v the_o case_n stand_v otherwise_o with_o he_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v see_v 18.18_o sap._n 18.18_o whether_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o indifferent_a ceremony_n which_o the_o faithful_a may_v omit_v or_o keep_v at_o their_o pleasure_n it_o seem_v indeed_o to_o have_v in_o it_o certain_a thing_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o the_o end_n thereof_o be_v thanksgiving_n as_o we_o say_v before_o in_o the_o 18._o cha_n &_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o rite_n itself_o repugnant_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n 9.20_o 1._o cor._n 9.20_o paul_n do_v not_o doubt_v to_o descend_v thus_o far_o to_o make_v his_o religion_n know_v therefore_o paul_n do_v that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o elswher_o because_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o companion_n of_o those_o which_o follow_v the_o law_n as_o if_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o the_o law_n final_o he_o be_v make_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o man_n that_o he_o may_v win_v all_o to_o wit_n even_o unto_o the_o altar_n so_o that_o he_o may_v pollute_v himself_o with_o no_o sacrilege_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o love_n it_o have_v not_o be_v so_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o go_v unto_o the_o solemn_a sacrifice_n of_o satisfaction_n but_o as_o for_o this_o part_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o consist_v in_o a_o vow_n he_o may_v do_v it_o indifferent_o so_o it_o be_v not_o do_v for_o religion_n sake_n but_o only_o to_o support_v the_o week_n but_o it_o be_v neither_o his_o intent_n to_o worship_n god_n with_o this_o rite_n neither_o be_v his_o conscience_n tie_v but_o he_o do_v freley_o submit_v himself_o to_o his_o weak_a brethren_n 24_o which_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o thou_o be_v
so_o for_o if_o he_o ought_v to_o believe_v paul_n his_o word_n every_o malefactor_n may_v by_o this_o shift_n have_v escape_v punishment_n but_o this_o be_v their_o manner_n of_o deal_v he_o which_o do_v say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n unless_o he_o can_v bring_v in_o some_o which_o know_v he_o or_o prove_v it_o lawefullie_o he_o be_v punish_v for_o it_o be_v death_n for_o any_o man_n to_o pretend_v the_o freedom_n of_o the_o city_n false_o wherefore_o the_o centurion_n refer_v the_o matter_n unto_o the_o chief_a captain_n as_o doubt_v thereof_o and_o he_o as_o we_o have_v say_v do_v straightway_o examine_v the_o matter_n more_o thorough_o and_o though_o luke_n do_v not_o express_v by_o what_o testimony_n paul_n do_v prove_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n yet_o undoubted_o the_o chief_a captain_n know_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n before_o he_o loose_v he_o 28_o with_o a_o great_a sum_n the_o chief_a captain_n object_v this_o to_o refute_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o city_n be_v not_o so_o common_a and_o easy_o to_o be_v obtain_v how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o thou_o be_v some_o base_a fellow_n of_o the_o country_n of_o the_o cilician_o shall_v obtain_v this_o honour_n for_o which_o i_o pay_v sweet_o whereas_o paul_n make_v answer_n that_o he_o be_v free_a bear_v who_o never_o see_v the_o city_n yea_o who_o father_n it_o may_v be_v be_v never_o there_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o this_o shall_v trouble_v any_o man_n for_o those_o who_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o roman_a history_n know_v that_o certain_a be_v make_v free_a of_o the_o city_n who_o dwell_v in_o the_o province_n if_o have_v deserve_v well_o of_o the_o common_a wealth_n or_o in_o war_n or_o in_o other_o weighty_a affair_n they_o do_v desire_n and_o crave_v this_o reward_n of_o the_o deputy_n so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v bear_v a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n who_o descend_v by_o his_o ancestor_n of_o some_o province_n far_o distant_a from_o rome_n do_v never_o set_v foot_n in_o italy_n notwithstanding_o the_o question_n be_v how_o this_o can_v hang_v together_o that_o the_o chief_a captain_n be_v afraid_a because_o he_o have_v bind_v a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o loose_v he_o from_o his_o bond_n until_o the_o morrow_n it_o may_v be_v that_o he_o defer_v it_o till_o the_o next_o day_n lest_o he_o shall_v show_v some_o token_n of_o fear_n notwithstanding_o i_o think_v that_o the_o chief_a captain_n be_v afraid_a because_o paul_n be_v bind_v at_o his_o commandment_n that_o he_o may_v be_v scourge_v because_o this_o be_v to_o do_v injury_n to_o the_o body_n of_o a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o break_v the_o common_a liberty_n and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o put_v a_o roman_a in_o prison_n chap._n xxiii_o 1_o and_o paul_n behold_v the_o council_n steadfast_o and_o say_v man_n &_o brethren_n i_o have_v serve_v god_n until_o this_o day_n in_o all_o good_a conscience_n 2_o and_o the_o high_a priest_n ananias_n command_v those_o that_o stand_v by_o he_o to_o smite_v he_o on_o the_o face_n 3_o then_o paul_n say_v to_o he_o god_n will_v smite_v thou_o thou_o paint_a wall_n and_o thou_o sit_v judge_v according_o to_o law_n and_o transgress_v the_o law_n command_v thou_o i_o to_o be_v smite_v 4_o and_o those_o which_o stand_v by_o say_v rail_v thou_o on_o god_n high_a priest_n 5_o and_o paul_n say_v i_o wist_v not_o brethren_n that_o he_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n for_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v not_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o ruler_n of_o thy_o people_n 1_o look_v earnest_o paul_n begin_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n that_o all_o the_o whole_a multitude_n may_v understand_v that_o he_o be_v unjust_o charge_v with_o such_o a_o heinous_a offence_n as_o if_o he_o have_v go_v about_o to_o overthrow_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n it_o may_v be_v indeed_o that_o a_o man_n may_v offend_v of_o ignorance_n who_o will_v not_o otherwise_o be_v a_o contemner_n either_o of_o god_n or_o of_o religion_n but_o paul_n mean_v at_o the_o first_o only_o with_o this_o excuse_n to_o mollify_v their_o nettle_v mind_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o be_v hear_v for_o it_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a for_o he_o to_o have_v defend_v himself_o so_o long_o as_o that_o opinion_n do_v stick_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a revolt_n therefore_o before_o he_o enter_v the_o cause_n he_o excuse_v himself_o of_o that_o crime_n not_o only_o that_o he_o may_v purchase_v favour_n by_o that_o desire_n which_o he_o have_v to_o live_v godly_o but_o also_o that_o he_o may_v prevent_v false_a accusation_n or_o at_o least_o that_o he_o may_v refute_v unjust_a preiudices_fw-la which_v may_v have_v make_v against_o he_o wherewith_o he_o see_v the_o whole_a multitude_n infect_v and_o corrupt_v we_o know_v not_o what_o he_o mean_v to_o say_v beside_o notwithstanding_o this_o preface_n teach_v that_o no_o man_n can_v right_o handle_v the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n unless_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n reign_n and_o bear_v the_o chief_a sway_n in_o he_o and_o now_o though_o he_o give_v not_o the_o priest_n so_o honourable_a a_o title_n here_o as_o he_o do_v a_o little_a before_o when_o he_o stand_v upon_o the_o step_n of_o the_o fortress_n yet_o he_o call_v they_o brethren_n give_v they_o that_o honour_n not_o because_o they_o deserve_v it_o but_o that_o he_o may_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o breach_n of_o friendship_n 2_o and_o the_o chief_a priest_n luke_n his_o narration_n seem_v not_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o usual_a history_n for_o josephus_n write_v thus_o concern_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o that_o time_n that_o quadratus_n deputy_n of_o syria_n depose_v cumanus_n from_o the_o government_n of_o judea_n command_v he_o to_o answer_v for_o himself_o before_o caesar_n and_o send_v ananias_n the_o high_a priest_n bind_v with_o he_o into_o who_o place_n who_o be_v choose_v he_o make_v no_o mention_n save_v that_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o jonathas_n have_v the_o honour_n give_v he_o who_o as_o he_o report_v be_v afterward_o slay_v by_o the_o subtlety_n and_o treachery_n of_o felix_n deputy_n of_o judea_n wh_o succeed_v cumanus_n for_o when_o he_o have_v oftentimes_o tell_v felix_n part_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o he_o can_v not_o away_o with_o the_o constancy_n of_o the_o man_n he_o make_v a_o compact_n with_o one_o doras_n that_o he_o shall_v privy_o convey_v in_o murderer_n to_o slay_v he_o then_o as_o the_o same_o josephus_n do_v witness_v king_n agrippa_n make_v ishmael_n the_o son_n of_o phebeus_n priest_n but_o when_o he_o be_v send_v by_o the_o people_n to_o rome_n about_o a_o certain_a suit_n and_o be_v keep_v there_o by_o popea_n wife_n to_o nero_n agrippa_n put_v in_o his_o place_n one_o josephus_n who_o name_n be_v chabus_n the_o son_n of_o simon_n but_o immediate_o be_v also_o weary_a of_o he_o he_o appoint_v ananus_fw-la the_o son_n of_o ananus_fw-la to_o be_v high_a priest_n futhermore_o he_o say_v that_o this_o last_o thing_n happen_v at_o such_o time_n as_o after_o the_o death_n of_o festus_n albinus_n do_v succeed_v he_o and_o i_o see_v not_o why_o some_o call_v this_o ananus_fw-la ananias_n that_o have_v indeed_o some_o colour_n in_o that_o he_o be_v call_v a_o pharisee_n also_o in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v bold_a and_o stout_a who_o without_o any_o lawful_a authority_n cause_v james_n the_o lord_n brother_n to_o be_v stone_v but_o if_o we_o give_v credaunce_n to_o josephus_n he_o can_v not_o be_v that_o ananias_n of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o this_o place_n by_o luke_n who_o be_v then_o make_v priest_n when_o many_o year_n be_v past_a and_o go_v after_o that_o felix_n depart_v out_o of_o the_o province_n i_o have_v another_o conjecture_n in_o my_o head_n for_o there_o flourish_v during_o all_o that_o time_n one_o ananias_n a_o high_a priest_n who_o except_v the_o title_n of_o honour_n be_v almost_o chief_a in_o the_o order_n and_o because_o josephus_n leave_v some_o void_a time_n between_o ananias_n and_o ishmael_n it_o may_v be_v that_o this_o man_n have_v the_o room_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n but_o though_o this_o be_v not_o so_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o josephus_n that_o ananias_n who_o die_v when_o the_o city_n be_v besiege_v be_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o claudius_n caesar_n and_o nero_n equal_a in_o dignity_n with_o the_o chief_a priest_n which_o be_v then_o yea_o his_o authority_n be_v so_o high_o extol_v as_o if_o he_o have_v have_v the_o chief_a government_n howsoever_o other_o man_n do_v bear_v the_o ensign_fw-la
thou_o which_o they_o have_v against_o he_o fare_v well_o 31_o and_o the_o soldier_n as_o they_o be_v command_v take_v paul_n and_o bring_v he_o by_o night_n unto_o antipatras_n 32_o and_o on_o the_o morrow_n when_o they_o have_v send_v away_o the_o horseman_n that_o they_o may_v go_v with_o he_o they_o return_v to_o the_o camp_n 33_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o caesarea_n and_o have_v deliver_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o governor_n they_o present_v paul_n also_o before_o he_o 34_o and_o when_o the_o governor_n have_v read_v it_o and_o have_v ask_v of_o what_o province_n he_o be_v and_o have_v know_v that_o he_o be_v of_o celicia_n 35_o i_o will_v hear_v thou_o say_v he_o when_o thy_o accuser_n be_v come_v and_o he_o command_v he_o to_o be_v keep_v in_o herod_n judgement_n hall_n 25_o and_o he_o write_v a_o letter_n first_o we_o must_v brief_o admonish_v the_o reader_n who_o have_v not_o be_v conversant_a in_o history_n that_o this_o foelix_n be_v brother_n to_o pallas_n who_o be_v caesar_n freeman_n become_v equal_a with_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o city_n in_o wealth_n and_o power_n yea_o moreover_o the_o senate_n give_v he_o the_o ornament_n of_o the_o praetor_n not_o without_o title_n of_o filthy_a and_o shameful_a flattery_n therefore_o see_v the_o servant_n of_o claudius_n abuse_v his_o folly_n do_v rule_v the_o roman_a empire_n at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o chief_o narcissus_n and_o pallas_n no_o marvel_v if_o this_o latter_a do_v appoint_v his_o brother_n to_o be_v governor_n of_o judea_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o epistle_n tend_v to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o chief_a captain_n may_v help_v paul_n with_o his_o prejudice_n and_o may_v admonish_v foelix_n of_o the_o injury_n of_o his_o adversary_n and_o may_v so_o discredit_v they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v he_o any_o hurt_n 27_o this_o man_n be_v take_v this_o be_v speak_v odious_o concern_v the_o jew_n that_o he_o may_v purchase_v more_o favour_n for_o paul_n that_o a_o man_n be_v a_o roman_a be_v by_o they_o sore_o beat_v and_o almost_o slay_v also_o he_o commend_v he_o for_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n of_o his_o freedom_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o more_o courteous_o handle_v furthermore_o this_o commendation_n be_v not_o purchase_v by_o prayer_n or_o flattery_n neither_o be_v it_o buy_v with_o money_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v then_o that_o the_o chief_a captain_n do_v show_v himself_o so_o courteous_a free_o to_o a_o obscure_a man_n &_o who_o all_o man_n do_v hate_v save_v only_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v he_o to_o be_v his_o servant_n patron_n therefore_o we_o see_v how_o he_o govern_v the_o tongue_n and_o hand_n of_o the_o infidel_n to_o the_o profit_n of_o those_o that_o be_v he_o 29_o who_o i_o perceive_v in_o this_o place_n he_o acquit_v paul_n so_o far_o as_o his_o judgement_n can_v reach_v but_o let_v we_o note_v that_o a_o profane_a man_n speak_v for_o among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o offence_n worthy_a of_o no_o less_o punishment_n to_o corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n with_o wicked_a and_o false_a opinion_n than_o to_o do_v injury_n too_o or_o commit_v wickedness_n among_o man_n the_o roman_n will_v not_o have_v suffer_v their_o superstition_n or_o feign_a worshiping_n of_o their_o god_n to_o be_v freedom_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o make_v no_o account_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n yea_o see_v they_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v the_o same_o quite_o put_v out_o it_o be_v among_o they_o no_o fault_n to_o believe_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n no_o more_o or_o to_o trouble_v the_o church_n with_o false_a opinion_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o law_n that_o the_o governor_n shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o such_o matter_n but_o that_o those_o who_o be_v abide_v in_o the_o province_n shall_v so_o retain_v their_o religion_n that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v do_v contrary_a to_o the_o same_o the_o roman_a magistrate_n shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o punish_v thereof_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o chief_a captain_n think_v it_o no_o offence_n to_o have_v move_v question_n concern_v the_o law_n and_o under_o colour_n hereof_o unlearned_a man_n will_v have_v leave_n grant_v to_o themselves_o and_o other_o amiss_o to_o cause_n trouble_v the_o lord_n say_v far_o otherwise_o who_o do_v more_o sharp_o punish_v the_o violate_v of_o his_o worship_n than_o any_o injury_n do_v to_o man_n and_o sure_o nothing_o be_v more_o absurd_a than_o to_o let_v those_o who_o rob_v god_n of_o his_o honour_n escape_v scotfree_a see_v theft_n be_v punish_v but_o as_o the_o chief_a captain_n care_v not_o for_o the_o jewish_a religion_n so_o the_o false_a accusation_n and_o slander_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v refute_v wherewith_o they_o will_v glad_o have_v burden_v paul_n 40_o when_o it_o be_v show_v to_o i_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o epistle_n where_o the_o chief_a captain_n do_v bring_v the_o adversary_n into_o contempt_n because_o they_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v paul_n treacherous_o whence_o it_o be_v also_o gather_v that_o they_o trouble_v paul_n unjust_o and_o that_o they_o seek_v so_o sore_o after_o his_o life_n without_o any_o cause_n for_o if_o they_o have_v persecute_v he_o lawful_o they_o will_v have_v trust_v to_o the_o goodness_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o not_o have_v suffer_v he_o to_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o law_n now_o when_o as_o they_o seek_v to_o kill_v he_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n 32_o and_o the_o next_o day_n though_o luke_n do_v not_o express_v before_o that_o the_o soldier_n be_v command_v to_o return_v before_o they_o come_v at_o their_o way_n end_v yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o accompany_v he_o only_o unto_o that_o place_n where_o the_o chief_a captain_n thought_n paul_n will_v be_v safe_a for_o he_o go_v out_o privy_o in_o the_o night_n and_o the_o chief_a captain_n know_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v finish_v some_o part_n of_o their_o journey_n there_o be_v no_o far_a danger_n because_o the_o adversary_n can_v have_v no_o hope_n to_o overtake_v he_o and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o point_n of_o wisdom_n to_o send_v part_n of_o the_o garrison_n far_o away_o chap._n xxiiii_o 1_o and_o after_o five_o day_n the_o chief_a priest_n ananias_n come_v down_o with_o the_o elder_n and_o one_o tertullus_n a_o rhetorician_n who_o come_v before_o the_o governor_n against_o paul_n 2_o and_o when_o paul_n be_v call_v forth_o tertullus_n begin_v to_o accuse_v he_o say_v see_v that_o we_o live_v in_o great_a peace_n by_o mean_n of_o thou_o and_o see_v many_o thing_n be_v restore_v in_o this_o nation_n by_o thy_o providence_n 3_o that_o allow_v we_o ever_o and_o in_o all_o place_n most_o noble_a felix_n with_o all_o thanks_o 4_o but_o least_o i_o become_v tedious_a unto_o thou_o i_o pray_v thou_o hear_v we_o a_o little_a of_o thy_o courtesy_n 5_o for_o we_o have_v find_v this_o man_n a_o pestilent_a fellow_n and_o a_o mover_n of_o debate_n unto_o all_o the_o jew_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o a_o author_n of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o nazarite_n 6_o who_o do_v also_o go_v about_o to_o pollute_v the_o temple_n who_o when_o we_o have_v take_v we_o will_v have_v judge_v he_o according_a to_o our_o law_n 7_o but_o the_o chief_a captain_n lysias_n come_v upon_o we_o and_o with_o great_a violence_n take_v he_o from_o us._n 8_o command_v his_o accuser_n to_o come_v down_o unto_o thou_o of_o who_o thou_o may_v if_o thou_o will_v inquire_v know_v the_o certainty_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n whereof_o we_o accuse_v he_o 9_o and_o the_o jew_n add_v say_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o 1_o see_v ananias_n go_v down_o to_o caesarea_n to_o accuse_v paul_n it_o make_v the_o conjecture_n more_o probable_a which_o i_o bring_v before_o touch_v his_o priesthood_n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o take_v such_o a_o journey_n therefore_o some_o other_o man_n be_v high_a priest_n at_o that_o time_n and_o ananias_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a priest_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v in_o great_a authority_n and_o be_v withal_o a_o stout_a man_n do_v take_v this_o ambassage_n upon_o he_o he_o bring_v with_o he_o a_o train_n and_o that_o of_o the_o worshipful_a company_n of_o elder_n that_o the_o governor_n may_v be_v move_v with_o their_o very_a pomp_n to_o condemn_v paul_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o paul_n do_v use_v no_o eloquence_n they_o have_v no_o need_n to_o hire_v a_o rhetorician_n to_o contend_v with_o he_o in_o eloquence_n moreover_o they_o do_v exceed_v both_o in_o dignity_n and_o also_o in_o multitude_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o they_o to_o oppress_v a_o poor_a man_n and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o
7._o 53._o 57_o the_o tongue_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v corrupt_a after_o their_o exile_n 22._o 2._o the_o father_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v murder_v their_o brethren_n 7._o 9_o the_o stubbornness_n of_o the_o jew_n 17._o 51._o the_o jew_n be_v corrupter_n of_o the_o scripture_n 17._o 3._o the_o jew_n which_o dwell_v in_o the_o province_n be_v deadly_a enemy_n to_o the_o gospel_n 6._o 9_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n by_o the_o alone_a grace_n of_o god_n adoption_n 10._o 15_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o jew_n 13._o 46._o the_o reject_v of_o the_o jew_n 13._o 46_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v corrupt_a in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 13._o 6._o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v conden_v by_o the_o cruel_a edict_n of_o the_o roman_n 8._o 27._o and_o 10._o 2._o and_o 16._o 20._o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v everye_o where_o odious_a 16._o 13_o three_o sect_n of_o the_o jew_n 23._o 6._o the_o blind_a zeal_n of_o the_o jew_n 3._o 17._o and_o 23._o 6._o the_o equality_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n 15._o 9_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n 2._o 39_o the_o use_n of_o image_n among_o the_o gentile_n 17._o 29._o impiety_n of_o the_o israelite_n 7._o 36_o inconstancy_n be_v a_o common_a and_o in_o a_o manner_n a_o continual_a vice_n in_o all_o people_n 16._o 22._o incredulity_n profane_v all_o thing_n 10._o 28._o infant_n must_v not_o be_v keep_v from_o baptism_n 2._o 39_o and_o 10._o 47._o the_o invention_n touch_v the_o two_o angel_n of_o every_o man_n be_v profane_a 12._o 15_o the_o invention_n of_o mercury_n the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o god_n 14._o 11_o the_o invention_n touch_v the_o image_n of_o diana_n 9_o 35._o invocation_n of_o dead_a saint_n be_v overthrow_v 3._o 22._o the_o office_n of_o john_n baptist_n 1._o 5._o and_o 10._o 37._o and_o 13._o 24._o and_o 19_o 3._o the_o compare_v of_o christ_n and_o john_n baptist_n together_o 1._o 5._o john_n mark_n be_v the_o helper_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n 13._o 5._o john_n mark_n depart_v from_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n 13._o 13._o john_n mark_v sin_n be_v great_a than_o it_o be_v common_o take_v for_o 15._o 37._o why_o jonathas_n the_o high_a priest_n be_v slay_v 24._o 2._o josephus_n his_o place_n 4._o 15._o and_o 5._o 36._o &_o 15._o 13._o and_o 8._o 5._o and_o 11._o 28._o &_o 12._o 1_o 21._o &_o 21._o 37._o and_o 23._o 2._o and_o 24._o 2._o 5_o and_o 25._o 13._o ironia_fw-la 4._o 9_o and_o 23._o 5._o judas_n a_o author_n of_o sedition_n 5._o 36._o judge_n put_v for_o ruler_n and_o governor_n 13._o 20._o judge_n raise_v up_o of_o god_n 5._o 30._o rash_a judgement_n be_v condemn_v 10._o 15._o &_o 28._o 4._o how_o necessary_a the_o preach_n of_o god_n judgement_n be_v 3._o 20._o &_o 17._o 37._o justice_n put_v for_o honesty_n and_o innocence_n before_o man_n 10._o 35_o to_o justify_v for_o to_o deliver_v and_o acquit_v 13._o 38._o the_o fable_n of_o justine_n touch_v moses_n 7._o 2._o k_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n put_v for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n 20._o 25._o how_o small_a the_o beginning_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v 16._o 11_o kneel_v be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v of_o itself_o 10._o 25._o kneel_v in_o time_n of_o prayer_n be_v a_o token_n of_o humility_n 9_o 40._o knowledge_n be_v the_o moderation_n of_o zeal_n 18._o 25._o l_o how_o the_o law_n as_o concern_v the_o ceremony_n be_v abrogate_a by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n 8._o 27._o the_o law_n concern_v the_o choice_n of_o beast_n be_v abrogate_a 10._o 13._o man_n can_v possible_o fulfil_v the_o law_n 15._o 10._o the_o law_n be_v count_v a_o yoke_n two_o manner_n of_o way_n 15._o 10._o the_o law_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o good_a life_n 10._o 35._o how_o the_o law_n be_v count_v a_o lively_a speech_n 7._o 38._o how_o the_o law_n be_v lively_a ibid._n the_o law_n of_o porcius_n touch_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n 16._o 37._o and_o 22._o 25._o the_o law_n of_o sempronius_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n 16._o 37._o and_o 22._o 25._o the_o word_n law_n improper_o use_v 1._o 5._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o law_n 7._o 53._o the_o alone_a end_n of_o the_o law_n 15._o 11._o the_o office_n of_o the_o law_n 15._o 1._o 10._o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o law_n be_v ground_v in_o christ_n 15._o 9_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n 17._o 2._o whether_o the_o faithful_a may_v go_v to_o law_n under_o a_o unbelieve_a judge_n 25._o 11._o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v a_o temporal_a ceremony_n 8._o 18._o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v a_o solemn_a sign_n of_o consecration_n 6._o 6._o what_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n do_v note_n in_o time_n past_a 9_o 17._o and_o 33._o 3._o and_o 19_o 6_o and_o 28._o 8._o lay_v await_n for_o paul_n 9_o 23._o how_o many_o soldier_n be_v in_o a_o legion_n 10._o 1._o what_o liberality_n do_v please_v god_n 4._o 32._o liberality_n must_v be_v voluntary_a 11._o 29._o liberality_n be_v commend_v 9_o 36._o &_o 10._o 2._o and_o 28._o 7._o the_o reward_n of_o liberality_n 10._o 4._o liberality_n be_v commend_v 10._o 25._o 20._o 25._o the_o word_n lotte_n be_v diverse_o take_v .._o 1._o 26._o how_o far_o forth_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o cast_v lot_n ibid._n love_n commend_v 4._o 32._o &_o 5._o 12._o degree_n of_o love._n 11._o 29._o the_o lucianiste_n make_v semblance_n of_o faith_n 8._o 13._o luke_n be_v full_a of_o hebrew_n phrase_n though_o he_o write_v in_o greek_a 2._o 3_o lydda_n be_v also_o call_v diospolis_n 9_o 32._o lydia_n be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o church_n of_o philippi_n 16._o 13._o the_o way_n to_o order_v the_o life_n aright_o 10._o 2._o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o present_a life_n ●7_n 27._o wherein_o the_o integrity_n of_o life_n consist_v 10._o 35._o newness_n of_o life_n be_v necessary_a 3._o 26._o we_o must_v study_v to_o lead_v a_o godly_a life_n 20._o 21._o the_o bond_n of_o life_n and_o death_n be_v appoint_v for_o man_n 13._o 37_o in_o what_o respect_n we_o must_v save_v our_o life_n or_o contemn_v it_o 20._o 24._o &_o 23._o 17._o m_o macedonius_n a_o heretic_n 13._o 2._o the_o office_n of_o a_o magistrate_n 16._o 15._o 22._o and_o 18._o 12._o how_o far_o forth_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o magistrate_n 5._o 29._o &_o 23._o 25_o the_o unfaithfulnes_n of_o certain_a magistrate_n 11._o 17._o the_o mahometist_n imagine_v a_o new_a god_n 22._o 14._o the_o error_n of_o the_o manichee_n touch_v the_o soul_n 17._o 28_o man_n duty_n be_v to_o seek_v god_n ibidem_fw-la to_o what_o end_n man_n be_v bear_v 17._o 26._o what_o man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v of_o themselves_o 9_o 15._o all_o man_n be_v accurse_v without_o christ_n 3._o 25._o 26._o how_o great_a man_n blindness_n be_v 17._o 27_o man_n conversion_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n 14._o 1._o man_n heart_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n 9_o 6._o &_o 16._o 14._o and_o 23._o 19_o 23._o &_o 25._o 1._o and_o 28_o 1._o four_o kind_n of_o man_n 13._o 50._o man_n unthankfulnes_n 17._o 26._o man_n merit_n be_v overthowen_v 7._o 35._o and_o 13._o 39_o 48._o man_n nature_n be_v bend_v unto_o vanity_n 14._o 11._o man_n careless_a security_n 17._o 32._o how_o great_a man_n recklessness_n be_v 2._o 12._o man_n life_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n 5._o 19_o that_o be_v sometime_o attribute_v to_o man_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n alone_o 7._o 30._o 36._o &_o 13._o 47._o and_o 16._o 9_o &_o 26._o 18._o who_o be_v true_a martyr_n 21._o 34._o christ_n martyr_n must_v be_v comfort_v 24._o 23._o the_o constancy_n &_o courage_n of_o the_o martyr_n in_o our_o time_n 6._o 9_o &_o 19_o 34._o the_o difference_n between_o martyr_n and_o wicked_a doer_n 7._o 58._o mathias_n be_v make_v a_o apostle_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n 1._o 23._o mean_n must_v not_o be_v reject_v 27._o 30._o those_o of_o melita_n think_v amiss_o of_o paul_n 28._o 4._o the_o inconstancy_n of_o the_o melitian_n 28._o 6._o man_n merit_n be_v overthrow_v 7._o 35._o and_o 10._o 4._o and_o 13._o 17._o &_o 15._o 9_o and_o 26._o 18._o how_o minister_n ought_v to_o be_v choose_v in_o the_o church_n 6._o 2._o look_v pastor_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n 14._o 23._o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v most_o laborious_a 6._o 2._o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v commend_v 1._o 2._o and_o 2._o 2._o 4._o 7._o and_o 8._o 31._o &_o 9_o 6._o and_o 10._o 5._o 36._o 44._o and_o 11._o 3._o and_o 15._o 28._o and_o 16._o 9_o 14_o and_o 17._o 30._o &_o 22._o 10._o and_o 26._o 18._o why_o miracle_n be_v
the_o hatred_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v procure_v 9_o 23_o how_o great_a the_o force_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v 9_o 22._o &_o 15._o 12._o and_o 19_o 9_o the_o tumult_n raise_v by_o satan_n be_v malicious_o impute_v to_o the_o gospel_n 17._o 6._o the_o turk_n because_o of_o their_o manifold_a victory_n deride_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 25._o 19_o the_o school_n of_o tirannus_n at_o ephesus_n 19_o 9_o tyrant_n be_v afraid_a of_o innovation_n 12._o 1._o how_o arrogant_a spiritual_a tyrant_n be_v 5._o 28._o sidon_n and_o tyrus_n be_v proud_a c_o …_o 12._o 20._o v_o we_o must_v leave_v vengeance_n t●_n god_n 7._o 7._o &_o 16._o 37._o 23._o 3._o virtue_n sign_n and_o wonder_n put_v for_o miracle_n 2_o 22._o &_o 4._o 30._o why_o paul_n speak_v of_o hi●_n virtue_n 20._o 18._o virgil_n place_n 6._o 35._o &_o 17._o 28._o paul_n see_v a_o vision_n 1●_n 9_o &_o 16._o 9_o and_o 22._o 18._o and_o 27._o 2d_o peter_n see_v a_o vision_n 10._o 3._o 12._o the_o use_n of_o vision_n 9_o 10._o difference_n between_o vision_n &_o dream_n 18._o 9_o the_o punishment_n of_o unbelief_n 8._o 11._o all_o vnbeleever_n be_v pollute_v 10._o 28._o the_o understanding_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n of_o god_n 16._o 14._o unthankfulness_n must_v be_v avoid_v 10._o 41._o unthankfulness_n of_o the_o israelite_n 7._o 36._o 40_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o italian_n 10._o 1._o use_n be_v the_o father_n of_o wisdom_n 6._o 2._o w_n why_o they_o do_v wash_v the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o time_n past_a 9_o 37._o why_o it_o be_v forbid_v to_o scale_v the_o wall_n 9_o 25_o the_o ancient_a rite_n of_o wash_v corpse_n 9_o 37._o way_n put_v for_o sect_n 19_o 25._o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n 13._o 10._o the_o way_n of_o man_n 14._o 16._o the_o malice_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v liken_v to_o fransine_n 13._o 27._o the_o fear_n of_o the_o wicked_a 16._o 38._o the_o manner_n of_o the_o wicked_a 9_o 23._o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o wicked_a against_o the_o truth_n ibidem_fw-la the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o wicked_a 5._o 21._o how_o god_n use_v the_o industrye_n of_o the_o wicked_a 4._o 28_o the_o rage_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v set_v on_o fire_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n ●●mmeth_v near_o it_o 13._o 45._o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o wicked_a in_o oppress_v the_o truth_n 4._o 1._o the_o godly_a must_v despise_v &_o tread_v underfoot_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o wicked_a 13._o 48._o 52._o the_o fearfulness_n of_o the_o wicked_a 23._o 12._o the_o zeal_n ●f_o the_o wicked_a 17._o 5_o how_o we_o ought_v to_o handle_v the_o wicked_a 4._o 11._o &_o ●_o 33._o &_o 7._o 54._o &_o 8._o 20._o 23._o and_o 13._o 1●_n 40._o &_o 18._o 6._o &_o 19_o 9_o and_o 23._o 3._o and_o 2d_o 26._o and_o 28._o 25._o the_o wicked_a join_a hand_n to_o hand_n to_o oppress_v the_o gospel_n 23._o 6._o the_o wicked_a though_o against_o their_o will_n confirm_v the_o gospel_n 4._o 21._o the_o wicked_a do_v always_o invent_v some_o cause_n to_o sin_n 16._o 19_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o what_o hurt_n they_o will_v 2._o 43._o and_o 3._o ●8_o &_o 4._o 1._o 4._o 21._o 28._o &_o 22._o 2._o &_o 18._o 1●_n and_o 25._o 1._o how_o the_o wicked_a do_v obey_v god_n 2._o 23._o the_o wicked_a return_n always_o unto_o their_o nature_n 24._o 27._o the_o wicked_a be_v easy_o seduce_v by_o satan_n 2._o 22._o the_o wicked_a do_v even_o establish_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n 17._o 26._o all_o the_o wicked_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n 13._o 27._o the_o wicked_a do_v sometime_o fear_v man_n 5._o 21._o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v the_o very_a entry_n of_o hell_n 14._o 22._o the_o blindness_n of_o the_o wicked_a 5._o ●7_n and_o 9_o 23._o the_o evil_a conscience_n of_o the_o wicked_a 5._o 13._o 17._o the_o vain_a counsel_n of_o the_o wicked_a 4._o 5._o 25._o 27._o and_o 9_o 23._o &_o 23._o 16._o the_o end_n of_o the_o wicked_a 1._o 20._o &_o 8._o 20._o the_o frail_a &_o vain_a felicity_n of_o the_o wicked_a 12._o 20._o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o wicked_a 9_o 5._o &_o 12._o 20._o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o wicked_a aught_o worthy_o to_o be_v despyse_v 16._o 1._o the_o lust_n of_o the_o wicked_a must_v be_v bridle_v 16._o 37._o the_o wicked_a be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n 13._o 10._o the_o wicked_a be_v the_o bondeslave_n of_o satan_n 13._o 51._o the_o wicked_a be_v the_o minister_n of_o satan_n 21._o 11._o how_o abominable_a the_o wicked_a be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 13._o 9_o the_o wicked_a must_v sometime_o be_v set_v by_o the_o ear_n together_o 23._o 6._o the_o wicked_a do_v always_o wax_v worse_o &_o worse_a 8._o 1_o &_o 9_o 6._o &_o 12._o 19_o &_o 13._o 45._o &_o 19_o 9_o &_o 26._o 24_o and_o 28._o 29._o the_o wicked_a must_v not_o be_v prefer_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n 4._o 17._o the_o wicked_a be_v without_o excuse_n 2._o 23._o &_o 18._o 6._o and_o 24._o 25._o and_o 28._o 27._o the_o liberty_n of_o whore_v do_v reign_v every_o where_o 15._o 19_o whoredom_n be_v accurse_v before_o god_n ibid._n woman_n must_v not_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o word_n 18._o 26_o word_n put_v for_o thing_n 5._o 32._o and_o 10._o 36._o whence_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o word_n do_v come_v 10._o 33._o look_v the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o good_a work_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n 10._o 35._o whether_o good_a work_n do_v purchase_v god_n favour_n 10._o 35._o good_a work_n be_v commend_v 23._o 8._o &_o 9_o 36._o the_o reward_n of_o work_n 10._o 4._o all_o the_o world_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o 2._o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n 13._o 1._o how_o we_o ought_v to_o consider_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n 4._o 24._o the_o nature_n of_o the_o world_n be_v addict_v to_o external_a visure_n 6._o 14._o the_o unthankfulnes_n of_o the_o world_n 26._o 17._o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o world_n how_o great_a 14._o 19_o the_o difference_n between_o god_n and_o the_o world_n 5._o 41._o how_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v 4._o 24._o the_o world_n be_v create_v by_o god_n 14._o 15._o 17._o why_o god_n create_v the_o world_n in_o six_o day_n 12._o 10._o how_o great_o the_o world_n be_v set_v upon_o superstition_n 28._o 6._o the_o world_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n 17._o 26._o 28_o how_o far_o forth_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o faithful_a to_o worship_n in_o the_o temple_n 24._o 11._o civil_a worship_n must_v be_v distinguish_v from_o that_o which_o be_v do_v for_o religion_n sake_n 10._o 25._o 54._o why_o bastardly_a and_o corrupt_a worshipping_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o good_a and_o sincere_a 7._o 44._o 4._o what_o worship_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n 7._o 42._o widow_n choose_v to_o the_o deaconship_n 6._o 1._o we_o must_v have_v regard_n of_o widow_n 9_o 39_o true_a wisdom_n 10._o 21._o z_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o sadducee_n 5._o 17._o the_o bloody_a zeal_n of_o hypocrite_n 17._o 5._o what_o account_v we_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o rash_a zeal_n 5._o 17._o the_o mad_a zeal_n of_o the_o jew_n 3._o 17._o and_o 23._o 6._o the_o blind_a and_o furious_a zeal_n of_o the_o papist_n 5._o 17._o and_o 6._o 11._o 9_o 23._o ¶_o imprint_v at_o london_n by_o thomas_n dawson_n for_o george_n bishop_n 1585._o
unprofitable_a labour_n for_o that_o religion_n wherein_o god_n have_v not_o the_o pre-eminence_n be_v nothing_o worth_a nether_a have_v it_o any_o truth_n or_o soundness_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o sincere_a and_o perfect_a godliness_n be_v never_o find_v neither_o do_v it_o ever_o flourish_v in_o the_o more_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o they_o stand_v only_o about_o the_o remove_n of_o the_o old_a idolatry_n and_o the_o other_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o mean_a season_n foreslow_v to_o bring_v man_n unto_o the_o true_a god_n alone_o after_o that_o they_o have_v forsake_v idol_n they_o turn_v in_o deed_n the_o name_n of_o a_o idol_n sometime_o into_o the_o name_n of_o god_n but_o under_o that_o colour_n they_o do_v nevertheless_o cherish_v the_o old_a error_n which_o they_o shall_v have_v endeavour_v to_o redress_v so_o the_o priest_n of_o france_n beget_v the_o single_a life_n of_o great_a cybele_n nun_n come_v in_o place_n of_o the_o vestal_a virgin_n the_o church_n of_o all_o saint_n succeed_v pantheo_n or_o the_o church_n of_o all_o god_n against_o ceremony_n be_v set_v ceremony_n not_o much_o unlike_a at_o length_n come_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o god_n who_o they_o think_v will_v be_v lawful_a and_o tolerable_a if_o they_o have_v once_o deck_v they_o with_o the_o title_n of_o saint_n corruption_n be_v not_o by_o this_o mean_v purge_v neither_o be_v the_o stable_n both_o profane_a and_o full_a of_o filth_n turn_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n but_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v mix_v with_o profane_a pollusion_n and_o god_n himself_o be_v bring_v into_o a_o filthy_a stall_n wherefore_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o only_o employ_v themselves_o to_o overthrow_v idolatry_n which_o have_v long_a time_n reign_v in_o former_a age_n but_o do_v also_o take_v great_a heed_n that_o pure_a religion_n may_v reign_v afterward_o have_v put_v all_o corruption_n to_o flight_n who_o have_v make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n we_o know_v that_o the_o order_n of_o teach_v do_v require_v that_o we_o begin_v with_o thing_n which_o be_v better_a know_v see_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n speak_v to_o the_o gentile_n they_o shall_v have_v in_o vain_a assay_v to_o bring_v they_o unto_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o they_o to_o begin_v with_o some_o other_o point_n which_o be_v not_o so_o far_o separate_v from_o common_a sense_n that_o after_o that_o be_v confess_v they_o may_v afterward_o pass_v over_o unto_o christ_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o man_n of_o lystra_n be_v possess_v with_o that_o error_n that_o there_o be_v more_o god_n than_o one_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n show_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n after_o that_o that_o feign_a number_n and_o multitude_n of_o the_o god_n be_v take_v away_o there_o be_v passage_n now_o make_v unto_o the_o second_o member_n that_o they_o may_v teach_v what_o that_o god_n be_v who_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n the_o case_n stand_v otherwise_o at_o this_o day_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n they_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o they_o admit_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o prove_v to_o they_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n what_o god_n be_v &_o after_o what_o sort_n he_o will_v be_v worship_v of_o man_n 16_o in_o time_n past_a because_o the_o man_n of_o lystra_n may_v object_v that_o that_o god_n be_v unknowen_a hitherto_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n prevent_v they_o and_o say_v that_o all_o man_n wander_v indeed_o in_o darkness_n and_o that_o all_o mankind_n be_v strike_v with_o blindness_n but_o that_o they_o deny_v that_o any_o prejudice_n must_v be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o perverse_a ignorance_n of_o the_o world_n these_o be_v then_o no_o small_a let_n for_o the_o unbeliever_n long_a antiquity_n of_o time_n and_o the_o consent_n almost_o of_o all_o nation_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n remove_v both_o in_o this_o place_n if_o say_v they_o man_n have_v err_v many_o year_n &_o if_o the_o world_n have_v wander_v without_o reason_n &_o judgement_n let_v not_o therefore_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n when_o it_o appear_v be_v less_o precious_a to_o you_o for_o see_v that_o it_o be_v eternal_a and_o be_v not_o change_v it_o be_v a_o unmeete_a thing_n that_o the_o long_a prescription_n of_o year_n shall_v be_v set_v against_o it_o they_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o aid_n or_o patronage_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o number_n of_o man_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n say_v they_o why_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v keep_v you_o from_o come_v to_o the_o right_a way_n blindness_n have_v get_v the_o upper_a hand_n among_o all_o people_n but_o god_n do_v now_o appear_v and_o give_v light_a to_o you_o therefore_o your_o eye_n must_v be_v open_a and_o you_o must_v not_o slumber_v and_o sleep_v in_o darkness_n though_o all_o people_n have_v be_v drown_v therein_o hitherto_o their_o way_n if_o he_o have_v only_o say_v that_o man_n be_v deceive_v until_o that_o time_n through_o god_n sufferance_n we_o may_v easy_o gather_v thereby_o that_o all_o man_n can_v do_v nothing_o else_o but_o err_v so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v not_o govern_v of_o god_n yet_o he_o speak_v far_o more_o plain_o when_o he_o call_v error_n the_o way_n of_o man_n for_o we_o be_v plain_o teach_v by_o this_o what_o the_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n of_o man_n mind_n can_v do_v in_o behold_v and_o keep_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n all_o people_n say_v he_o have_v walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n that_o be_v they_o have_v wander_v in_o darkness_n and_o death_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o sparkle_n of_o true_a reason_n in_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o rule_n of_o true_a godliness_n that_o be_v that_o the_o faithful_a cast_v from_o they_o all_o confidence_n in_o their_o own_o wit_n do_v submit_v themselves_o to_o god_n for_o the_o way_n of_o man_n be_v now_o as_o they_o be_v in_o time_n past_a &_o the_o example_n of_o all_o time_n teach_v how_o miserable_o blind_a those_o man_n be_v who_o have_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o give_v they_o light_n though_o they_o think_v they_o can_v pass_v other_o man_n in_o quickness_n of_o sight_n immediate_o after_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n the_o more_o part_n fall_v away_o unto_o diverse_a superstition_n and_o wicked_a worshipping_n whence_o come_v that_o save_o only_o because_o it_o please_v they_o to_o follow_v their_o own_o imagination_n when_o it_o may_v have_v seem_v that_o the_o world_n be_v purge_v with_o the_o flood_n it_o fall_v again_o straightway_o to_o the_o same_o vice_n therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o deadly_a then_o to_o lean_v to_o our_o own_o wisdom_n but_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n show_v no_o cause_n here_o why_o the_o lord_n suffer_v the_o world_n to_o err_v so_o long_o and_o assure_o we_o must_v count_v the_o will_n of_o god_n alone_o the_o chief_a law_n of_o equity_n god_n have_v always_o a_o good_a reason_n for_o his_o work_n but_o because_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o hide_v from_o we_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n reverent_o to_o wonder_v at_o his_o secret_a counsel_n we_o must_v in_o deed_n confess_v that_o the_o world_n be_v worthy_a of_o such_o destruction_n but_o there_o can_v no_o other_o reason_n be_v bring_v why_o the_o lord_n have_v mercy_n rather_o on_o one_o age_n then_o on_o another_o save_v only_o because_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o therefore_o paul_n call_v that_o time_n which_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n for_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 4.4_o gal._n 4.4_o the_o time_n of_o fullness_n lest_o any_o other_o opportunity_n be_v seek_v and_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o time_n &_o season_n which_o the_o father_n have_v place_v in_o his_o own_o power_n so_o that_o the_o cavil_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v refute_v who_o say_v that_o it_o can_v be_v that_o god_n suffer_v his_o church_n to_o err_v so_o long_o for_o whence_o i_o pray_v you_o come_v the_o gentile_n but_o from_o the_o ark_n of_o noah_n when_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a singular_a purity_n of_o the_o church_n also_o the_o posterity_n of_o holy_a sem_fw-mi together_o with_o other_o do_v degenerate_a yea_o israel_n the_o peculiar_a people_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v also_o leave_v for_o a_o long_a time_n 9.9_o gen._n 9.9_o wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_v if_o god_n do_v punish_v the_o contempt_n of_o his_o word_n with_o the_o same_o blindness_n under_o the_o reign_n of_o his_o son_n as_o he_o do_v in_o time_n past_a 17_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v
that_o of_o messana_n over_o against_o which_o be_v rhegium_n whereof_o he_o make_v mention_n and_o it_o be_v in_o the_o country_n of_o the_o brutian_o as_o be_v puteoli_n a_o city_n of_o campania_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o brethren_n keep_v paul_n at_o puteoli_n seven_o day_n by_o this_o we_o gather_v how_o favourable_o &_o gentle_o the_o centurion_n handle_v paul_n neither_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o holy_a man_n will_v have_v make_v he_o a_o faithful_a promise_n that_o he_o will_v always_o return_v in_o due_a time_n but_o he_o be_v persuade_v of_o his_o uprightness_n so_o that_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a that_o he_o will_v deceive_v he_o and_o now_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v then_o sow_v abroad_o see_v there_o be_v some_o body_n of_o the_o church_n even_o at_o puteoli_n 15_o and_o when_o the_o brethren_n have_v hear_v of_o we_o from_o thence_o they_o come_v out_o to_o meece_n we_o at_o appii_n forum_n and_o at_o the_o three_o tavern_n who_o when_o paul_n see_v he_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n and_o wax_v bold_a 16_o and_o when_o we_o be_v come_v to_o rome_n the_o centurion_n deliver_v the_o prisoner_n to_o the_o chief_a captain_n of_o the_o host_n but_o paul_n be_v suffer_v to_o dwell_v alone_o with_o a_o soldier_n which_o keep_v he_o 17_o and_o after_o three_o day_n paul_n call_v together_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o jew_n and_o when_o they_o be_v come_v he_o say_v to_o they_o man_n and_o brethren_n though_o i_o have_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o people_n or_o ordinance_n of_o the_o elder_n yet_o be_v i_o deliver_v a_o prisoner_n from_o jerusalem_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o roman_n 18_o which_o when_o they_o have_v examine_v i_o they_o will_v have_v let_v i_o go_v because_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o death_n in_o i_o 19_o but_o when_o the_o jew_n speak_v contrary_a i_o be_v enforce_v to_o appeal_v to_o caesar_n not_o as_o if_o i_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o accuse_v my_o nation_n of_o 20_o for_o this_o cause_n therefore_o have_v i_o send_v for_o you_o that_o i_o may_v see_v you_o and_o speak_v to_o you_o for_o the_o hope_n of_o israel_n be_o i_o bind_v with_o this_o chain_n 15_o when_o the_o brethren_n hear_v god_n do_v comfort_n paul_n by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o brethren_n who_o come_v forth_o to_o meet_v he_o that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o joyful_o make_v haste_n to_o defend_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o zeal_n and_o godly_a care_n of_o the_o brethren_n appear_v therein_o in_o that_o they_o inquire_v for_o paul_n come_n and_o go_v out_o to_o meet_v he_o for_o it_o be_v at_o that_o time_n not_o only_o a_o odious_a thing_n to_o profess_v the_o christian_n faith_n but_o it_o may_v also_o bring_v they_o in_o hassarde_n of_o their_o life_n neither_o do_v a_o few_o man_n only_o put_v themselves_o in_o private_a danger_n because_o the_o envy_n redound_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o nothing_o be_v more_o dear_a to_o they_o then_o their_o duty_n wherein_o they_o can_v not_o be_v negligent_a unless_o they_o will_v be_v count_v sluggishe_a and_o unthankful_a it_o have_v be_v a_o cruel_a fact_n to_o neglect_v so_o great_a a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n especial_o see_v he_o labour_v for_o the_o common_a salvation_n and_o now_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v write_v to_o they_o before_o and_o have_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n offer_v his_o service_n to_o they_o it_o have_v be_v a_o unseemly_a thing_n not_o to_o repay_v to_o he_o brotherly_o good_a will_n and_o courtesy_n therefore_o the_o brethren_n do_v by_o this_o their_o dutifulness_n testify_v their_o godliness_n towards_o christ_n &_o paul_n desire_n be_v more_o inflame_v because_o he_o see_v fruit_n prepare_v for_o his_o constancy_n for_o though_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o invincible_a strength_n so_o that_o he_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o man_n help_n yet_o god_n who_o use_v to_o strengthen_v his_o by_o mean_n of_o man_n do_v minister_v to_o he_o new_a strength_n by_o this_o mean_n though_o he_o be_v afterward_o forsake_v when_o he_o be_v in_o prison_n as_o he_o complain_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o despair_v but_o do_v fight_v no_o less_o valiant_o and_o manful_o under_o christ_n banner_n than_o if_o he_o have_v be_v guard_v with_o a_o great_a army_n but_o the_o remembrance_n of_o this_o meeting_n do_v ferue_v even_o then_o to_o encourage_v he_o 4.16_o 2._o tim._n 4.16_o see_v he_o do_v consider_v with_o himself_o that_o there_o be_v many_o bo●ly_a brethren_n at_o rome_n but_o they_o be_v weak_a and_o that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o strengthen_v they_o and_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v marvel_v that_o paul_n be_v embolden_v at_o this_o present_a when_o he_o see_v the_o brethren_n because_o he_o do_v hope_n that_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n will_v yield_v no_o small_a fruit_n for_o so_o often_o as_o god_n show_v to_o his_o servant_n any_o fruit_n of_o their_o labour_n he_o do_v as_o it_o be_v prick_v they_o forward_o with_o a_o goad_n that_o they_o may_v proceed_v more_o courageous_o in_o their_o work_n 16_o the_o centurion_n deliver_v the_o prisoner_n luke_n do_v signify_v that_o paul_n have_v more_o liberty_n grant_v he_o then_o the_o rest_n for_o this_o condition_n and_o estate_n be_v peculiar_a for_o he_o be_v suffer_v to_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n by_o himself_o have_v one_o keeper_n with_o he_o where_o as_o the_o rest_n be_v shut_v up_o in_o the_o common_a prison_n for_o the_o general_a captain_n know_v by_o festus_n his_o report_n that_o paul_n be_v guiltless_a and_o the_o centurion_n as_o it_o be_v likely_a do_v faithful_o rehearse_v such_o thing_n as_o may_v serve_v to_o bring_v he_o into_o favour_n notwithstanding_o let_v we_o know_v that_o god_n do_v govern_v from_o heaven_n the_o bond_n of_o his_o servant_n not_o only_o that_o he_o may_v ease_v he_o of_o his_o trouble_n but_o that_o the_o faithful_a may_v have_v free_a access_n unto_o he_o for_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o treasure_n of_o his_o faith_n shut_v up_o in_o prison_n but_o he_o will_v have_v it_o lay_v open_a that_o it_o may_v enrich_v many_o far_a and_o wide_o and_o yet_o paul_n be_v not_o so_o at_o liberty_n but_o that_o he_o do_v always_o carry_v a_o chain_n luke_n call_v the_o general_a captain_n stratopedarch_v who_o be_v appoint_v over_o the_o army_n which_o keep_v the_o city_n as_o history_n make_v mention_v 17_o and_o after_o three_o day_n paul_n his_o humanity_n be_v wonderful_a in_o that_o though_o he_o have_v suffer_v such_o cruel_a injury_n of_o his_o nation_n he_o study_v notwithstanding_o to_o appease_v the_o jew_n which_o be_v at_o rome_n and_o he_o excuse_v himself_o to_o they_o lest_o they_o hate_v his_o cause_n because_o they_o hear_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v hate_v he_o he_o may_v well_o have_v excuse_v himself_o before_o man_n if_o he_o have_v pass_v over_o these_o jew_n and_o turn_v himself_o to_o the_o gentile_n for_o though_o he_o have_v continual_o in_o diverse_a place_n assay_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o christ_n yet_o they_o be_v more_o and_o more_o nettle_v and_o move_v and_o yet_o he_o have_v omit_v nothing_o neither_o in_o asia_n nor_o in_o grecia_n neither_o at_o jerusalem_n which_o may_v mitigate_v their_o fury_n therefore_o all_o man_n will_v have_v just_o pardon_v he_o if_o he_o have_v let_v those_o alone_a who_o he_o have_v so_o often_o try_v to_o be_v of_o desperate_a pride_n but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o his_o master_n be_v give_v of_o his_o father_n to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o fulfil_v the_o promise_n whereby_o god_n have_v adopt_v to_o himself_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n to_o be_v his_o people_n he_o look_v unto_o the_o call_n of_o god_n and_o be_v never_o weary_a he_o see_v that_o he_o must_v remain_v at_o rome_n see_v he_o have_v liberty_n grant_v to_o teach_v he_o will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o labour_n second_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o move_v through_o hatred_n of_o his_o cause_n to_o trouble_v the_o church_n because_o a_o small_a occasion_n may_v have_v cause_v great_a destruction_n therefore_o paul_n mean_v to_o beware_v least_o according_a to_o their_o wont_a madness_n they_o shall_v set_v all_o on_o fire_n i_o have_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o people_n these_o two_o thing_n may_v have_v make_v the_o jew_n hate_v he_o either_o because_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v hurt_v to_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o his_o nation_n as_o some_o runagate_n do_v increase_v their_o bondage_n which_o be_v too_o cruel_a through_o their_o treachery_n or_o because_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v somewhat_o against_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o though_o the_o jew_n
be_v grow_v out_o of_o kind_n &_o religion_n be_v deprave_a and_o corrupt_v among_o they_o with_o many_o error_n yet_o the_o very_a name_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v great_o reverence_v furthermore_o paul_n deni_v not_o but_o that_o he_o do_v free_o omit_v those_o ceremony_n whereto_o the_o jew_n be_v superstitious_o tie_v yet_o he_o clear_v himself_o of_o the_o crime_n of_o revolt_n whereof_o he_o may_v be_v suspect_v therefore_o understande_v those_o ordinance_n of_o the_o father_n whereby_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o disciple_n of_o moses_n ought_v according_a to_o their_o faith_n to_o have_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o sure_o in_o that_o he_o do_v cleeve_v so_o holy_o to_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o soul_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o impair_n the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o father_n that_o none_o do_v better_o observe_v the_o same_o 19_o i_o be_v enforce_v to_o appeal_v this_o appeal_n be_v full_a of_o hatred_n and_o envy_n for_o this_o cause_n because_o the_o authority_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v sore_o oppress_v who_o can_v have_v be_v content_a to_o have_v live_v with_o their_o own_o law_n second_o because_o his_o defence_n be_v join_v with_o infamy_n &_o loss_n of_o all_o the_o people_n therefore_o he_o answer_v this_o objection_n also_o because_o he_o be_v enforce_v with_o the_o stubbornness_n of_o his_o enemy_n to_o fly_v to_o this_o fortress_n for_o he_o be_v excuse_v by_o necessity_n because_o he_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o escape_v death_n and_o after_o that_o he_o have_v excuse_v that_o which_o be_v do_v already_o he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v so_o handle_v his_o matter_n hereafter_o that_o he_o will_v not_o labour_v against_o the_o jew_n 20_o for_o the_o hope_n of_o israel_n we_o must_v understande_v much_o more_o under_o these_o word_n than_o luke_n express_v as_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o answer_n where_o the_o jew_n speak_v of_o the_o sect_n to_o wit_n repeat_v his_o speech_n which_o luke_n omit_v therefore_o paul_n entreat_v of_o christ_n that_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v that_o neither_o the_o law_n nor_o the_o temple_n do_v profit_v the_o jew_n any_o thing_n without_o he_o because_o the_o covenaunt_n of_o adoption_n be_v ground_v in_o he_o and_o the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n be_v in_o he_o confirm_v neither_o do_v they_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o even_o at_o that_o time_n their_o misery_n and_o decay_n do_v increase_v the_o hope_n and_o desire_v of_o he_o wherefore_o paul_n say_v for_o good_a cause_n that_o he_o be_v bind_v for_o the_o hope_n of_o israel_n whereby_o we_o be_v also_o teach_v that_o no_o man_n do_v hope_n aright_o but_o he_o which_o look_v unto_o christ_n and_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n for_o when_o he_o place_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o godly_a in_o christ_n he_o exclude_v all_o other_o hope_n 21_o but_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o we_o neither_o receive_v letter_n from_o judea_n touch_v thou_o neither_o do_v any_o of_o the_o brethren_n come_v and_o show_v we_o or_o speak_v any_o evil_n of_o thou_o 22_o but_o we_o will_v hear_v of_o thou_o what_o thou_o think_v for_o as_o concern_v that_o sect_n we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v speak_v against_o every_o where_n 23_o and_o when_o they_o have_v appoint_v he_o a_o day_n many_o come_v to_o he_o to_o his_o lodging_n to_o who_o he_o expound_v and_o testify_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o persuade_v they_o of_o jesus_n out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n from_o morning_n till_o night_n 24_o and_o certain_a believe_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v but_o certain_a believe_v not_o 21_o neither_o by_o letter_n the_o priest_n and_o scribe_n do_v not_o hold_v their_o peace_n because_o they_o be_v become_v more_o gentle_a toward_o paul_n or_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v spare_v he_o that_o proceed_v rather_o of_o contempt_n or_o else_o of_o despair_n because_o they_o neither_o know_v how_o to_o oppress_v he_o when_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o they_o and_z his_o carrying_z into_o italy_n be_v to_o they_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o grave_n for_o they_o do_v lord_n it_o no_o less_o careless_o then_o proud_o so_o that_o no_o body_n do_v trouble_v they_o at_o home_n furthermore_o though_o the_o jew_n come_v not_o altogether_o right_o prepare_v to_o hear_v yet_o they_o show_v some_o desire_n to_o learn_v when_o as_o they_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o defence_n of_o his_o doctrine_n which_o be_v speak_v against_o every_o where_n for_o many_o do_v stop_v the_o way_n before_o themselves_o with_o this_o prejudice_n because_o they_o can_v abide_v to_o hear_v that_o which_o be_v refuse_v by_o common_a judgement_n but_o subscribe_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o man_n to_o the_o condemn_v of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o know_v not_o nevertheless_o this_o be_v not_o without_o fault_n as_o i_o say_v that_o they_o obect_v gainsaying_n to_o cause_v hatred_n or_o to_o procure_v evil_a suspicion_n as_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v say_v before_o by_o isaias_n that_o god_n shall_v be_v a_o stone_n of_o offence_n to_o all_o the_o people_n it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o upon_o the_o day_n appoint_v paul_n dispute_v all_o the_o day_n or_o they_o reason_v one_o with_o another_o save_v only_o because_o we_o may_v guess_v by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n that_o paul_n do_v not_o continue_v speak_v still_o for_o he_o can_v scarce_o have_v frame_v a_o speech_n which_o can_v have_v continue_v from_o morning_n to_o night_n wherefore_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o after_o the_o apostle_n have_v brief_o expound_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o grant_v liberty_n to_o the_o hearer_n to_o propound_v question_n &_o do_v make_v answer_n to_o the_o question_n which_o be_v object_v to_o he_o but_o we_o must_v note_v the_o state_n of_o the_o disputation_n which_o luke_n say_v be_v double_a for_o paul_n teach_v first_o after_o what_o sort_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v among_o they_o and_o principal_o what_o manner_n chief_a felicity_n and_o glory_n that_o be_v which_o be_v promise_v to_o they_o which_o the_o prophet_n do_v so_o high_o extol_v for_o see_v that_o many_o of_o they_o do_v dream_n of_o a_o frail_a estate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n &_o do_v place_v the_o same_o false_o in_o idleness_n pleasure_n and_o in_o plenty_n of_o present_a good_a thing_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v right_o define_v that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v spiritual_a who_o beginning_n be_v newness_n of_o life_n and_o the_o end_n thereof_o bless_a immortality_n and_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n secondy_n paul_n exhort_v they_o to_o receive_v christ_n the_o author_n of_o the_o promise_a felicity_n and_o again_o this_o second_o point_n have_v two_o member_n for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v handle_v profitable_o and_o sound_o unless_o he_o do_v expound_v the_o office_n of_o the_o promise_a redeemer_n second_o unless_o he_o do_v show_v that_o he_o be_v already_o give_v and_o that_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n be_v he_o in_o who_o the_o father_n be_v hope_v it_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o common_a maxim_n among_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v and_o restore_v all_o thing_n into_o perfect_a order_n but_o paul_n labour_v another_o point_n which_o be_v not_o so_o well_o know_v that_o the_o messiah_n be_v promise_v who_o shall_v with_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n make_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n who_o shall_v reconcile_v god_n to_o man_n who_o shall_v purchase_v eternal_a righteousness_n who_o shall_v fashion_v man_n after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v regenerate_v with_o his_o spirit_n who_o shall_v final_o make_v his_o faithful_a servant_n heir_n with_o he_o of_o eternal_o life_n and_o that_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n crucify_v he_o can_v not_o entreat_v of_o those_o thing_n but_o he_o must_v needs_o call_v back_o the_o jew_n from_o their_o gross_a and_o earthly_a invention_n into_o heaven_n and_o also_o take_v away_o the_o stumble_a block_n of_o the_o cross_n see_v he_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n or_o mean_n whereby_o we_o be_v reconcile_v with_o god_n and_o let_v we_o note_v that_o as_o luke_n do_v testify_v paul_n take_v all_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n for_o true_a religion_n differ_v from_o all_o feign_a religion_n because_o the_o word_n of_o god_n alone_o be_v the_o rule_n thereof_o also_o the_o church_n of_o